Selected quad for the lemma: doctrine_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
doctrine_n faith_n rule_n tradition_n 3,100 5 9.6054 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A12701 An ansvvere to Master Iohn De Albines, notable discourse against heresies (as his frendes call his booke) compiled by Thomas Spark pastor of Blechley in the county of Buck Sparke, Thomas, 1548-1616.; Albin de Valsergues, Jean d', d. 1566. Marques de la vraye église catholique. English. 1591 (1591) STC 23019; ESTC S117703 494,957 544

There are 26 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

that_o by_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n he_o understand_v this_o same_o doctrine_n of_o god_n the_o father_n which_o before_o they_o write_v the_o apostle_n deliver_v unto_o the_o church_n by_o lively_a voice_n &_o afterward_o as_o it_o appear_v they_o set_v down_o in_o writing_n be_v this_o they_o honest_a deal_n in_o you_o to_o make_v your_o reader_n believe_v that_o he_o mean_v of_o unwriten_a doctrine_n such_o as_o the_o be_v for_o which_o you_o &_o we_o strive_v see_v he_o tell_v you_o himself_o that_o by_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n you_o be_v to_o understand_v this_o doctrine_n of_o god_n the_o father_n most_o plain_o &_o plentiful_o write_v and_o set_v down_o in_o the_o scripture_n you_o may_v have_v learn_v of_o s._n paul_n 2._o thes_n 2.15_o that_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d tradition_n may_v as_o well_o be_v refer_v to_o express_v doctrine_n in_o scripture_n as_o that_o which_o be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n where_o the_o apostle_n as_o then_o very_a little_a of_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v write_v and_o as_o then_o therefore_o the_o whole_a apostolic_a doctrine_n therein_o not_o be_v express_v say_v hold_v fast_o brethren_n the_o document_n deliver_v you_o whither_o by_o word_n or_o by_o our_o epistle_n but_o you_o be_v the_o less_o to_o be_v blame_v &_o the_o more_o to_o be_v bear_v withal_o for_o this_o your_o wilful_a thus_o abuse_v your_o reader_n because_o the_o make_n or_o mar_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n stand_v upon_o unwriten_a verity_n or_o rather_o forgery_n which_o you_o call_v the_o apostolic_a or_o the_o holy_a church_n tradition_n for_o there_o be_v few_o or_o none_o of_o those_o point_n of_o religion_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o you_o and_o strive_v with_o you_o about_o but_o your_o own_o great_a champion_n have_v confess_v have_v their_o ground_n from_o hence_o and_o not_o from_o the_o scripture_n as_o any_o man_n that_o will_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v they_o may_v see_v in_o peter_n soto_n against_o brentius_n in_o the_o 5._o cap._n of_o canisius_n catechism_n &_o in_o the_o 5._o book_n &_o 100_o c._n of_o lindans_fw-la panoply_n where_o they_o reckon_v up_o almost_o all_o the_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o &_o we_o in_o religion_n and_o when_o they_o have_v do_v plain_o confess_v the_o ground_n thereof_o to_o be_v but_o tradition_n and_o therefore_o to_o countenance_v this_o only_a bulwark_n of_o your_o church_n &_o religion_n at_o least_o with_o those_o that_o either_o for_o lack_n of_o leisure_n or_o learning_n can_v examine_v your_o quotation_n it_o be_v not_o your_o fault_n here_o alone_o but_o the_o common_a fault_n of_o you_o all_o where_o you_o find_v any_o mention_n in_o father_n of_o tradition_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o evident_a that_o thereby_o they_o mean_v nothing_o beside_o that_o which_o also_o have_v warrant_n from_o the_o word_n write_v to_o allege_v that_o place_n straight_o to_o countenance_v your_o unwriten_a tradition_n to_o prevent_v you_o therefore_o hereafter_o of_o thus_o abuse_v the_o simple_a i_o will_v wish_v they_o &_o all_o other_o to_o mark_v how_o flat_o against_o your_o unwriten_a &_o unwaranted_a tradition_n by_o the_o write_v word_n the_o father_n with_o one_o consent_n have_v write_v for_o the_o absolute_a sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n beside_o that_o which_o you_o herd_n out_o of_o irenaeus_n &_o tertullian_n to_o this_o purpose_n irenaeus_n say_v further_a in_o his_o five_o book_n we_o must_v run_v to_o the_o church_n &_o be_v bring_v up_o in_o her_o boatswain_n &_o nourish_v with_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n and_o tert_n against_o hermog_n write_v let_v hermogenes_n show_v that_o it_o be_v write_v if_o it_o be_v not_o write_v let_v he_o fear_v that_o woe_n that_o be_v threaten_v or_o appoint_v to_o the_o adder_n or_o taker_n away_o as_o for_o origen_n we_o have_v hear_v he_o tell_v we_o before_o that_o our_o sense_n and_o declaration_n without_o the_o witness_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v no_o credit_n in_o he_o 1._o hom._n upon_o jerem._n and_o great_a and_o worthy_a athanasius_n say_v the_o holy_a scripture_n give_v by_o divine_a inspiration_n be_v sufficient_a to_o show_v the_o truth_n against_o idol_n hilary_n say_v it_o be_v well_o that_o we_o be_v content_a with_o those_o thing_n that_o be_v write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n of_o the_o trinity_n cyrill_n upon_o john_n in_o his_o 12._o book_n and_o 68_o cap._n grant_v indeed_o that_o all_o thing_n that_o christ_n do_v be_v not_o write_v but_o he_o say_v those_o thing_n be_v write_v which_o the_o writer_n think_v sufficient_a both_o for_o manner_n and_o doctrine_n chrysostome_n write_v upon_o the_o 2._o to_o timothy_n homil._n 9_o say_v if_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n needful_a either_o to_o learn_v or_o to_o be_v ignorant_a of_o we_o shall_v learn_v it_o in_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o commentary_n upon_o matth._n common_o also_o father_v upon_o chrysostome_n we_o read_v these_o golden_a word_n they_o that_o be_v in_o christianity_n let_v they_o flee_v to_o the_o scripture_n because_o they_o can_v have_v no_o other_o proof_n of_o christianity_n but_o by_o the_o scripture_n to_o this_o end_n read_v also_o chrysostome_n upon_o the_o 2_o to_o the_o thes_n hom._n 3._o basil_n also_o very_o sharp_o write_v that_o it_o be_v a_o most_o evident_a argument_n of_o infidelity_n and_o a_o most_o certain_a sign_n of_o pride_n if_o any_o man_n either_o do_v reject_v any_o thing_n of_o that_o which_o be_v write_v or_o bring_v any_o thing_n not_o write_v see_v the_o lord_n say_v my_o sheep_n hear_v my_o voice_n and_o they_o follow_v not_o the_o voice_n of_o a_o stranger_n in_o his_o treatise_n of_o true_a and_o godly_a faith_n where_o also_o he_o note_v that_o paul_n galat._n 3._o by_o a_o example_n take_v from_o man_n most_o vehement_o forbid_v that_o any_o thing_n be_v put_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n or_o which_o god_n forbid_v say_v he_o be_v add_v thereunto_o and_o therefore_o he_o in_o moral_a reg._n 26._o say_v further_a whatsoever_o we_o say_v or_o do_v it_o must_v be_v confirm_v by_o the_o testimony_n of_o the_o scripture_n where_o likewise_o in_o his_o 80_o rule_n he_o gather_v that_o see_v faith_n come_v by_o hear_v and_o hear_v by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n without_o doubt_n whatsoever_o be_v without_o the_o holy_a scripture_n see_v it_o be_v not_o of_o faith_n must_v needs_o be_v sin_n and_o therefore_o he_o add_v in_o that_o rule_n let_v we_o stand_v to_o the_o arbitrament_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o with_o who_o doctrine_n be_v find_v consonant_n thereunto_o let_v the_o sentence_n of_o all_o truth_n be_v adjudge_v of_o their_o side_n hierome_n upon_o agge_n cap._n 1._o say_v those_o thing_n which_o of_o their_o own_o head_n they_o devise_v as_o though_o they_o come_v by_o apostolic_a tradition_n without_o the_o authority_n and_o testimony_n of_o the_o holy_a scripture_n the_o sword_n of_o god_n strike_v who_o also_o upon_o math._n cap._n 23._o say_v that_o which_o have_v not_o authority_n from_o the_o scripture_n as_o easy_o be_v despise_v as_o approve_v and_o contra_fw-la heluidium_fw-la he_o say_v we_o believe_v it_o because_o we_o read_v it_o and_o we_o believe_v it_o not_o because_o we_o read_v it_o not_o august_n against_o cresconins_n the_o grammarian_n in_o his_o 2._o book_n write_v that_o there_o be_v a_o ecclesiastical_a canon_n ordain_v whereunto_o belong_v the_o book_n of_o the_o prophet_n and_o apostle_n by_o which_o book_n we_o judge_v of_o all_o other_o writing_n both_o of_o the_o faithful_a and_o of_o the_o infidel_n out_o of_o who_o already_o we_o have_v hear_v diverse_a plain_a testimony_n to_o this_o purpose_n especial_o that_o against_o petilian_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 6._o cap._n set_v down_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o 3._o chap_n damascen_n be_v as_o plain_a as_o any_o of_o these_o in_o his_o 1_o book_n of_o right_a faith_n cap._n 1._o cuncta_fw-la quae_fw-la tradit_fw-la a_o sunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o thing_n say_v he_o which_o be_v deliver_v we_o by_o the_o prophet_n apostle_n and_o evangelist_n we_o embrace_v we_o acknowledge_v &_o reverence_v beyond_o those_o seek_v no_o further_o for_o all_o thing_n concern_v faith_n and_o manner_n he_o confess_v be_v plain_o contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n the_o doct_n christ_n lib._n 2._o cap._n 9_o infinite_a such_o place_n may_v be_v cite_v out_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n for_o they_o be_v full_a of_o they_o whereby_o it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o this_o be_v the_o uniform_a and_o general_a judgement_n and_o opinion_n of_o they_o of_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o scripture_n if_o therefore_o in_o deed_n and_o truth_n you_o make_v any_o reckon_n of_o their_o general_a consent_n as_o often_o time_n you_o will_v
word_n to_o trust_v they_o any_o more_o in_o their_o quote_v or_o cite_v of_o the_o father_n but_o lest_o we_o shall_v think_v that_o this_o be_v but_o a_o slip_n of_o he_o by_o chance_n &_o that_o he_o be_v not_o his_o craftes-master_n in_o this_o kind_n of_o deal_v he_o have_v play_v we_o the_o very_a like_o trick_n again_o with_o this_o same_o father_n pa._n 18._o &_o where_o he_o allege_v the_o four_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v irenaeus_n three_o book_n to_o justify_v their_o tradition_n not_o warrant_v by_o the_o write_a word_n for_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o say_a chapter_n not_o five_o line_n before_o the_o word_n cite_v by_o he_o he_o speak_v of_o the_o scripture_n write_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o euamgelist_n he_o say_v that_o they_o into_o that_o rich_a treasury_n most_o full_o have_v bring_v all_o thing_n that_o belong_v to_o truth_n so_o that_o every_o one_o that_o will_v may_v from_o thence_o take_v the_o drink_n of_o life_n and_o that_o which_o he_o speak_v in_o the_o word_n allege_v by_o he_o of_o follow_v of_o tradition_n it_o be_v speak_v only_o by_o way_n of_o supposition_n to_o show_v what_o course_n have_v be_v best_a for_o the_o church_n when_o any_o question_n shall_v have_v arisen_a if_o they_o have_v not_o leave_v we_o scripture_n for_o his_o word_n be_v these_o if_o the_o apostle_n have_v not_o leave_v we_o scripture_n must_v we_o not_o have_v follow_v the_o order_n of_o tradition_n which_o they_o give_v to_o they_o to_o who_o they_o commit_v church_n in_o which_o case_n which_o be_v not_o our_o case_n now_o see_v they_o have_v leave_v we_o scripture_n we_o grant_v we_o shall_v have_v be_v in_o the_o decide_n of_o all_o controversy_n that_o can_v have_v arisen_a overrule_v by_o that_o which_o they_o deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n to_o such_o and_o therefore_o that_o be_v the_o case_n no_o better_o or_o ready_a way_n for_o the_o end_n of_o controversy_n shall_v there_o have_v be_v then_o to_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o most_o ancient_a church_n wherein_o they_o be_v conversant_a and_o so_o by_o their_o tradition_n to_o have_v learn_v the_o certainty_n therein_o but_o thus_o by_o way_n of_o supposition_n irenaeus_n speak_v of_o their_o tradition_n in_o the_o case_n suppose_v by_o he_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o by_o their_o tradition_n he_o understand_v that_o sound_a form_n of_o doctrine_n which_o they_o deliver_v by_o their_o preach_n &_o teach_v which_o they_o will_v &_o shall_v have_v be_v the_o same_o forasmuch_o as_o they_o speak_v &_o write_v by_o one_o spirit_n that_o now_o they_o have_v leave_v we_o in_o writing_n and_o therefore_o even_o then_o the_o romish_a church_n shall_v have_v be_v as_o far_o to_o seek_v as_o she_o be_v now_o for_o have_v any_o warrant_n from_o thence_o for_o those_o thing_n that_o she_o hold_v either_o contrary_a or_o beside_o the_o word_n write_v and_o that_o by_o tradition_n he_o mean_v here_o no_o other_o thing_n it_o be_v evident_a for_o in_o the_o first_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n he_o say_v plain_o quod_fw-la tum_fw-la praeconiaverunt_fw-la postea_fw-la per_fw-la dei_fw-la voluntatem_fw-la nobis_fw-la tradiderunt_fw-la in_o scripture_n columnam_fw-la &_o fundamentum_fw-la fidei_fw-la futurum_fw-la that_o be_v that_o which_o first_o they_o preach_v after_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n they_o deliver_v unto_o we_o in_o the_o scripture_n to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n have_v before_o speak_v of_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n he_o after_o show_v what_o he_o mean_v thereby_o namely_o this_o that_o god_n the_o maker_n of_o heaven_n and_o earth_n &c_n &c_n as_o he_o be_v describe_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n the_o apostle_n have_v teach_v to_o be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n contrary_a to_o the_o fantastical_a frantic_a dream_n of_o valentinian_n so_o plain_o show_v that_o they_o that_o will_v even_o by_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o may_v learn_v what_o the_o apostolic_a tradition_n be_v now_o what_o be_v this_o for_o the_o authorish_a the_o unwriten_a tradition_n of_o the_o romish_a church_n which_o be_v not_o only_o all_o beside_o the_o scripture_n but_o whereof_o the_o most_o be_v contrary_a thereunto_o but_o this_o gentle_a reader_n be_v the_o right_a trick_n of_o all_o the_o crew_n of_o these_o romanist_n thus_o by_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o word_n out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o seek_v to_o colour_v their_o absurd_a opinion_n &_o so_o ere_fw-we thou_o be_v a_o ware_n to_o deceive_v thou_o if_o thou_o take_v not_o heed_n as_o for_o example_n to_o persuade_v a_o man_n to_o like_v of_o their_o beggarly_a unwritten_a tradition_n whatsoever_o any_o father_n speak_v of_o tradition_n though_o it_o be_v never_o so_o plain_a in_o the_o author_n himself_o that_o thereby_o he_o mean_v nothing_o less_o than_o such_o tradition_n as_o they_o yet_o that_o must_v be_v confident_o bring_v in_o as_o fit_v &_o most_o pregnant_a for_o their_o purpose_n likewise_o whatsoever_o any_o father_n have_v say_v of_o any_o sacramental_a change_n of_o the_o outward_a element_n for_o that_o therein_o their_o name_n use_v &_o estimation_n be_v change_v though_o the_o same_o father_n in_o a_o thousand_o other_o place_n show_v that_o his_o judgement_n be_v that_o there_o be_v no_o change_n at_o all_o there_o in_o substance_n yet_o that_o must_v be_v quote_v as_o a_o flat_a place_n for_o popish_a transubstantiation_n and_o even_o so_o if_o they_o find_v in_o a_o father_n speak_v of_o the_o eucharist_n any_o mention_n of_o a_o sacrifice_n as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o kind_n of_o sacrifice_n but_o that_o which_o they_o dream_v to_o be_v there_o that_o must_v be_v urge_v as_o a_o strong_a place_n to_o prove_v their_o blasphemous_a sacrifice_n for_o the_o quick_a &_o the_o dead_a and_o this_o juggle_n with_o the_o father_n and_o cozen_v of_o their_o poor_a simple_a reader_n use_v they_o in_o all_o their_o controversy_n but_o at_o this_o time_n thou_o must_v pardon_v this_o preface_n writer_n this_o fault_n because_o herein_o he_o do_v but_o study_n to_o be_v like_o he_o before_o who_o book_n he_o have_v set_v this_o his_o preface_n for_o chapter_n the_o five_o he_o himself_o most_o gross_o commit_v this_o same_o fault_n in_o the_o detection_n whereof_o i_o have_v more_o at_o large_a discover_v this_o lewd_a deal_n of_o they_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v we_o not_o forget_v that_o irenaeus_n have_v teach_v we_o what_o that_o church_n be_v who_o those_o pastor_n be_v &_o what_o those_o tradition_n be_v that_o we_o must_v obey_v &_o be_v rule_v by_o namely_o only_o that_o church_n that_o have_v the_o scripture_n for_o the_o pillar_n &_o ground_n of_o her_o faith_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 1._o those_o pastor_n that_o succeed_v the_o apostle_n in_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n li._n 4._o cap._n 43._o &_o those_o tradition_n which_o have_v good_a warrant_n from_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o lib._n 3._o cap._n 3._o whereof_o it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o all_o the_o place_n &_o reason_n quote_v by_o he_o either_o out_o of_o the_o scripture_n or_o father_n to_o bind_v we_o to_o yield_v obedience_n to_o their_o church_n ordinance_n their_o prelate_n commandment_n &_o to_o the_o point_v warrant_v only_o by_o their_o tradition_n their_o church_n have_v another_o foundation_n of_o her_o faith_n then_o the_o word_n write_v namely_o always_o their_o pope_n will_n as_o it_o have_v &_o the_o commandment_n of_o their_o prelate_n &_o tradition_n be_v not_o only_o beside_o but_o also_o often_o most_o gross_o contrary_a to_o that_o word_n of_o god_n write_v as_o i_o shall_v show_v in_o sundry_a place_n o_z i_o have_v do_v with_o albine_n in_o irenaeus_n judgement_n be_v but_o so_o many_o abusing_n and_o corrupting_n of_o their_o holy_a &_o good_a meaning_n and_o yet_o thus_o have_v to_o no_o purpose_n bestow_v a_o great_a deal_n of_o idle_a pain_n as_o one_o that_o have_v say_v enough_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o authority_n of_o all_o the_o learned_a father_n the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o christian_a region_n &_o prescription_n of_o time_n be_v all_o full_a &_o fast_o of_o his_o side_n he_o lusty_o brag_v p._n 22._o that_n if_o their_o be_v any_o weight_n in_o any_o or_o all_o these_o together_o that_o his_o side_n have_v the_o true_a gospel_n &_o the_o true_a sense_n thereof_o that_o their_o religion_n be_v the_o very_a christian_a religion_n their_o order_n of_o ceremony_n the_o right_a order_n and_o that_o their_o fast_n and_o pray_v be_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n and_o that_o therefore_o their_o church_n be_v the_o lawful_a and_o true_a spouse_n of_o christ_n from_o which_o who_o so_o separate_v himself_o be_v in_o state_n of_o damnation_n this_o thus_o only_o say_v thereupon_o by_o and_o by_o as_o though_o there_o be_v no_o
never_o have_v prove_v either_o of_o these_o nor_o yet_o be_v able_a to_o do_v it_o you_o shall_v conclude_v that_o your_o prescription_n against_o our_o doctrine_n which_o you_o call_v new_a at_o your_o pleasure_n though_o indeed_o it_o be_v most_o ancient_a witness_v the_o old_a testament_n and_o the_o new_a much_o rather_o ought_v to_o take_v place_n then_z his_o in_o his_o time_n against_o heretic_n that_o then_o teach_v diverse_a basphemous_a heresy_n direct_o against_o the_o scripture_n you_o say_v our_o religion_n have_v be_v unknowen_a this_o 1500._o year_n or_o at_o least_o if_o any_o body_n seek_v to_o publish_v it_o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o false_a pernicious_a heretic_n but_o you_o do_v but_o say_v thus_o you_o prove_v it_o not_o nor_o ever_o shall_v for_o it_o be_v both_o hear_v and_o know_v many_o 100_o year_n before_o you_o be_v hatch_v and_o if_o every_o one_o be_v so_o condemn_v that_o teach_v it_o than_o be_v christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n so_o condemn_v for_o unless_o by_o scripture_n we_o can_v prove_v we_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o be_v we_o ask_v no_o favour_n at_o your_o hand_n and_o as_o long_o as_o we_o can_v do_v so_o the_o more_o we_o and_o our_o predecessor_n have_v be_v condemn_v by_o you_o the_o more_o we_o know_v we_o have_v be_v bless_v of_o god_n now_o whereas_o you_o say_v in_o this_o chapter_n further_o that_o irenaeus_n do_v withstand_v heretic_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n add_v your_o gloss_n that_o be_v to_o say_v by_o doctrine_n not_o write_v but_o deliver_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n and_o so_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n from_o the_o apostle_n to_o that_o time_n therein_o through_o the_o ambiguity_n of_o the_o word_n tradition_n crafts_o you_o seek_v to_o deceive_v your_o simple_a reader_n and_o indeed_o you_o give_v a_o gloss_n that_o corrupteeh_a the_o text_n for_o let_v that_o place_n of_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n be_v peruse_v and_o that_o also_o which_o follow_v in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n though_o either_o you_o or_o the_o printer_n mistake_v it_o send_v we_o to_o the_o five_o chapter_n where_o the_o word_n be_v not_o which_o you_o cite_v and_o most_o evident_o it_o shall_v be_v prove_v that_o though_o irenaeus_n have_v there_o the_o word_n by_o you_o cite_v yet_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o he_o speak_v of_o there_o he_o mean_v no_o doctrine_n nor_o point_n of_o doctrine_n as_o you_o do_v usual_o by_o that_o word_n contrary_a or_o beside_o that_o which_o be_v also_o teach_v in_o the_o word_n write_v for_o the_o question_n be_v of_o god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n which_o valentinian_n &_o martion_n deny_v against_o who_o he_o there_o show_v that_o he_o fight_v first_o with_o the_o scripture_n wherewith_o when_o they_o be_v urge_v he_o say_v they_o be_v turn_v straight_o into_o a_o accusation_n of_o the_o scripture_n as_o though_o they_o be_v not_o right_a have_v not_o authority_n may_v diverse_o be_v take_v say_v further_o that_o truth_n can_v not_o be_v find_v of_o they_o by_o those_o that_o be_v ignorant_a of_o tradition_n for_o the_o truth_n be_v not_o deliver_v by_o they_o but_o by_o lively_a voice_n &_o that_o therefore_o paul_n say_v we_o speak_v wisdom_n among_o they_o that_o be_v perfect_a not_o the_o wisdom_n of_o this_o world_n and_o this_o wisdom_n to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o say_v he_o be_v that_o which_o he_o himself_o have_v devise_v of_o which_o heretic_n their_o word_n &_o you_o when_o you_o be_v call_v to_o the_o touchstone_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v so_o like_a undoubted_o you_o have_v learned_a to_o plead_v against_o the_o scripture_n for_o your_o unwritten_a tradition_n now_o when_o thus_o he_o have_v show_v how_o the_o heretic_n in_o his_o time_n shun_v trial_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o appeal_v to_o tradition_n he_o go_v on_o and_o show_v that_o when_o he_o be_v content_v to_o come_v to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n keep_v &_o observe_v in_o the_o church_n down_o from_o the_o apostle_n to_o those_o time_n by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n than_o they_o resist_v tradition_n also_o say_v that_o they_o be_v wise_a then_o either_o those_o pastor_n or_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o and_o so_o indeed_o neither_o by_o the_o scripture_n nor_o yet_o by_o make_v demonstration_n unto_o they_o that_o the_o same_o doctrine_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v also_o deliver_v by_o lively_a voice_n first_o by_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n and_o continue_v in_o by_o those_o pastor_n of_o who_o succession_n he_o speak_v can_v stop_v their_o mouth_n and_o thus_o any_o man_n of_o mean_a capacity_n may_v perceive_v that_o in_o these_o place_n irenaeus_n his_o drift_n only_o be_v to_o show_v the_o heretic_n that_o the_o doctrine_n which_o he_o teach_v concern_v god_n the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n first_o be_v warrant_v by_o the_o apostle_n writing_n and_o then_o also_o teach_v by_o they_o by_o lively_a voice_n and_o so_o deliver_v and_o continue_v from_o hand_n to_o hand_n among_o the_o faithful_a pastor_n succeed_v one_o another_o even_o unto_o that_o time_n and_o that_o he_o call_v this_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o not_o as_o you_o false_o expound_v he_o doctrine_n unwriten_a beside_o or_o contrary_n to_o that_o which_o be_v write_v as_o the_o popish_a tradition_n you_o strive_v for_o be_v if_o you_o have_v be_v dispose_v you_o may_v have_v learn_v in_o the_o 1._o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o book_n where_o he_o say_v that_o which_o first_o they_o preach_v after_o by_o the_o will_n of_o god_n tradiderunt_fw-la nobis_fw-la they_o deliver_v we_o in_o writing_n to_o be_v the_o foundation_n and_o pillar_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o indeed_o it_o be_v a_o usual_a thing_n with_o the_o father_n of_o the_o primitive_a church_n often_o by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o understand_v the_o very_a same_o doctrine_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o their_o writing_n herein_o therefore_o &_o so_o likewise_o in_o all_o other_o point_n in_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o it_o be_v a_o common_a trick_n with_o you_o papist_n to_o urge_v the_o father_n word_n quite_o contrary_a to_o their_o true_a meaning_n but_o because_o you_o first_o and_o namely_o bring_v in_o irenaeus_n for_o your_o unwriten_a tradition_n which_o be_v the_o window_n indeed_o that_o you_o will_v have_v fain_o leave_v open_a unto_o you_o for_o then_o thereby_o you_o hope_v you_o may_v thrust_v in_o and_o upon_o the_o church_n what_o you_o listen_v and_o so_o countenance_n thereby_o your_o antichristian_a doctrine_n when_o all_o other_o shift_n fail_v let_v we_o see_v whither_o this_o can_v yet_o further_o be_v make_v manifest_a out_o of_o he_o he_o as_o eusebius_n report_v hist_n eccles_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 14._o say_v that_o polycarpe_n teach_v that_o one_o and_o sole_a truth_n which_o he_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o apostle_n quae_fw-la &_o ecclesia_fw-la tradit_fw-la which_o the_o church_n deliver_v forth_o where_o of_o necessity_n by_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o church_n deliver_v by_o tradition_n that_o he_o there_o speak_v of_o you_o may_v not_o understand_v any_o other_o but_o those_o which_o have_v warrant_n from_o the_o word_n write_v and_o in_o no_o case_n those_o thing_n that_o be_v beside_o that_o or_o contrary_n thereunto_o for_o then_o he_o will_v not_o have_v call_v that_o which_o polycarpe_n preach_v the_o one_o and_o sole_a truth_n for_o questionless_a those_o thing_n be_v true_a that_o be_v contain_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o this_o clear_o appear_v if_o you_o mark_v the_o word_n as_o they_o be_v in_o irenaeus_n himself_o in_o his_o 5._o book_n &_o 20._o cap._n that_o eusebius_n have_v relation_n unto_o which_o be_v these_o polycarpe_n do_v mention_v or_o teach_v those_o thing_n which_o he_o have_v hear_v of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v all_o thing_n agreeable_a to_o the_o scripture_n again_o the_o same_o irenaeus_n in_o his_o 3._o book_n and_o 3._o cap._n which_o be_v one_o of_o the_o chapter_n by_o you_o before_o allege_v say_v that_o under_o clement_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n wrought_v to_o the_o corinthian_n show_v they_o quam_fw-la traditionem_fw-la what_o tradition_n of_o late_a they_o have_v receive_v of_o the_o apostle_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o god_n the_o father_n almighty_a and_o so_o forth_o as_o be_v express_v in_o moses_n be_v the_o father_n of_o our_o lord_n jesus_n christ_n and_o that_o he_o be_v so_o teach_v to_o be_v of_o the_o church_n say_v he_o they_o that_o will_v learn_v may_v by_o the_o scripture_n and_o so_o they_o may_v understand_v the_o apostolic_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n where_o it_o be_v most_o clear_a that_o he_o tell_v we_o himself_o
will_v be_v perfect_a &_o have_v in_o any_o great_a reckon_n among_o they_o they_o be_v in_o any_o case_n to_o abstain_v from_o marriage_n and_o as_o we_o find_v that_o these_o and_o other_o heretic_n be_v the_o forerunner_n of_o the_o papist_n in_o this_o point_n so_o we_o find_v that_o augustine_n epiphanius_n and_o other_o that_o write_v against_o they_o condemn_v this_o for_o a_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n in_o they_o but_o i_o know_v they_o will_v reply_v that_o herein_o we_o do_v they_o wrong_v in_o that_o we_o resemble_v they_o to_o these_o for_o these_o they_o say_v make_v this_o the_o reason_n and_o ground_n of_o their_o do_v that_o they_o hold_v marriage_n itself_o to_o be_v a_o unclean_a and_o filthy_a estate_n of_o life_n and_o therefore_o not_o fit_a for_o they_o that_o will_v serve_v the_o lord_n to_o live_v in_o which_o they_o say_v they_o do_v not_o hold_v indeed_o thus_o it_o be_v their_o fashion_n when_o for_o any_o of_o their_o absurd_a error_n they_o be_v press_v with_o our_o objection_n against_o they_o than_o somewhat_o to_o avoid_v the_o extremity_n of_o the_o foil_n to_o set_v a_o far_o better_a state_n of_o the_o question_n than_o otherwise_o either_o their_o common_a practice_n or_o doctrine_n will_v bear_v but_o when_o they_o find_v the_o chase_n end_v and_o themselves_o by_o such_o shift_n in_o some_o sort_n as_o they_o think_v to_o have_v escape_v then_o have_v recover_v their_o breath_n again_o they_o fall_v to_o their_o old_a flat_a grossness_n in_o the_o point_n in_o their_o life_n and_o teach_n and_o even_o so_o deal_v they_o in_o this_o for_o their_o whole_a and_o general_a practice_n make_v it_o most_o evident_a in_o that_o they_o rather_o tolerate_v their_o priest_n to_o have_v concubine_n to_o run_v to_o the_o stue_n yea_o and_o to_o commit_v sodomitry_n then_o to_o marry_o that_o indeed_o they_o think_v marriage_n be_v more_o unclean_a and_o defile_v their_o priesthood_n more_o than_o all_o these_o and_o dist_n 82._o gratian_n cite_v a_o say_n of_o pope_n siritius_n wherein_o in_o plain_a term_n he_o advouch_v they_o that_o hold_v that_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v marry_v and_o beget_v child_n as_o the_o priest_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v to_o be_v follower_n of_o lust_n and_o therein_o teacher_n of_o vice_n fron_n which_o profound_a divinity_n it_o come_v that_o the_o same_o siritius_n will_v persuade_v that_o therefore_o the_o minister_n of_o the_o gospel_n may_v not_o marry_v because_o saint_n paul_n say_v they_o that_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n can_v please_v god_n as_o though_o to_o live_v in_o the_o flesh_n with_o paul_n and_o to_o live_v in_o the_o state_n of_o marriage_n be_v all_o one_o which_o if_o it_o have_v be_v so_o what_o mean_v s._n paul_n to_o teach_v 1._o cor._n 7._o that_o he_o that_o bestow_v his_o daughter_n in_o marriage_n do_v well_o that_o marriage_n be_v honourable_a heb._n 13._o and_o that_o they_o that_o deny_v in_o hypocrisy_n the_o lawfulness_n thereof_o be_v such_o as_o have_v therein_o give_v ear_n unto_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n and_o thereby_o show_v that_o their_o conscience_n be_v burn_v as_o it_o be_v with_o a_o hot_a iron_n and_o that_o they_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n 1._o tim._n 4._o but_o they_o will_v say_v perhaps_o they_o be_v now_o ashamed_a of_o this_o old_a siritius_n &_o of_o his_o doctrine_n in_o this_o point_n doubtless_o if_o they_o be_v not_o there_o be_v just_a cause_n why_o they_o shall_v but_o i_o have_v two_o reason_n why_o i_o think_v they_o be_v not_o first_o because_o he_o be_v pope_n of_o rome_n they_o know_v then_o because_o even_o of_o late_a one_o gregory_n martin_n a_o great_a learned_a man_n as_o they_o account_v he_o write_v against_o our_o english_a translation_n chap._n 15._o sect_n 2._o write_v of_o this_o point_n even_o now_o as_o though_o that_o pope_n spirit_n still_o direct_v he_o flat_o that_o by_o marriage_n their_o priesthood_n be_v profane_v and_o make_v mere_a laical_a and_o popular_a wherefore_o i_o see_v not_o but_o that_o they_o be_v and_o may_v worthy_o still_o of_o we_o herein_o be_v say_v to_o be_v the_o right_a scholar_n &_o successor_n of_o the_o former_a heretic_n howbeit_o this_o i_o must_v needs_o further_o grant_v they_o that_o in_o peruse_v the_o writing_n of_o ancient_a father_n and_o chronicle_n of_o time_n i_o find_v even_o among_o they_o that_o otherwise_o yet_o seem_v to_o be_v christian_n and_o not_o heretic_n and_o that_o of_o very_o ancient_a time_n and_o so_o from_o time_n to_o time_n that_o have_v be_v favourer_n and_o urger_n of_o single_a life_n in_o minister_n for_o i_o find_v by_o that_o that_o clemens_n alexandrinus_n have_v write_v of_o this_o matter_n in_o the_o 3._o &_o 7._o book_n stromat_n who_o flourish_v within_o 200._o year_n after_o christ_n that_o they_o some_o earnest_o urge_v single_a life_n as_o a_o life_n most_o holy_a &_o fit_a for_o such_o and_o i_o know_v that_o in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a in_o constantine_n time_n it_o be_v attempt_v that_o there_o shall_v be_v make_v a_o canon_n to_o bind_v minister_n universal_o to_o live_v single_a without_o the_o use_n or_o company_n of_o wife_n &_o that_o after_o that_o siritius_n before_o speak_v of_o about_o the_o year_n 390._o after_o he_o gregory_n the_o first_o ann_n 600._o or_o thereabouts_o &_o after_o that_o sundry_a other_o pope_n namely_o &_o especial_o about_o 1000_o year_n after_o christ_n &_o after_o be_v marvelous_a eager_a and_o busy_a by_o their_o own_o authority_n &_o decree_n of_o counsel_n summon_v by_o their_o mean_n to_o establish_v &_o ratify_v this_o point_n whereupon_o as_o in_o other_o cuntreies_n of_o these_o western_a part_n to_o please_v they_o withal_o herein_o england_n many_o bishop_n as_o namely_o lancfranke_a dunstane_n &_o anselme_n archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n be_v marvelous_a forward_o in_o their_o time_n to_o further_o this_o device_n by_o mean_n whereof_o many_o decree_n pass_v in_o smode_n and_o counsel_n and_o many_o great_a thing_n be_v attempt_v &_o do_v to_o this_o end_n but_o yet_o then_o understand_v withal_o well-beloved_a that_o clemens_n in_o the_o place_n before_o quote_v confute_v &_o withstand_v notable_o these_o hypocrite_n both_o by_o example_n &_o reason_n even_o now_o use_v by_o we_o against_o these_o their_o successor_n that_o one_o paphnutius_fw-la in_o the_o council_n of_o nice_a though_o unmarried_a himself_o do_v so_o effectual_o withstand_v that_o attempt_n that_o it_o do_v not_o there_o pass_v that_o siritius_n be_v by_o a_o bishop_n of_o terragon_n confute_v &_o withstand_v &_o that_o gregory_n the_o first_o upon_o the_o find_n of_o 600._o child_n head_n after_o the_o cast_n of_o certain_a great_a pond_n near_o unto_o the_o abode_n of_o many_o enforce_v to_o that_o vow_n of_o single_a life_n revoke_v his_o determination_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o a_o epistle_n of_o one_o hulricke_n bishop_n of_o augusta_n to_o pope_n nicolas_n upon_o this_o reason_n that_o it_o be_v better_a to_o let_v they_o marry_v they_o to_o give_v occasion_n of_o such_o murder_n further_o in_o hildebrands_n time_n who_o after_o he_o be_v pope_n be_v call_v gregory_n the_o seven_o though_o we_o find_v that_o he_o of_o all_o that_o go_v before_o he_o be_v herein_o most_o extreme_a and_o go_v further_a yet_o notwithstanding_o we_o read_v in_o sigebert_n h._n mutiꝰ_n &_o other_o that_o he_o and_o his_o decree_n in_o this_o point_n be_v open_o &_o stout_o resist_v not_o only_o at_o constance_n &_o mentz_n in_o germany_n but_o also_o by_o the_o bishop_n of_o france_n and_o other_o cuntreies_n both_o by_o open_a preach_n &_o live_v with_o their_o wife_n do_v what_o he_o can_v and_o his_o successor_n for_o a_o great_a space_n he_o be_v the_o first_o that_o bind_v bishop_n &_o archbishop_n upon_o their_o oath_n to_o admit_v none_o into_o the_o ministry_n unless_o first_o they_o will_v vow_v a_o single_a life_n &_o yet_o after_o he_o have_v do_v what_o he_o can_v &_o pascalis_n that_o succeed_v he_o &_o anselme_n also_o their_o chaplein_n here_o to_o cause_v that_o decree_n to_o take_v place_n yet_o as_o our_o chronicle_n show_v gerhardus_fw-la archbishop_n of_o york_n write_v to_o that_o anselme_n that_o those_o that_o come_v for_o order_n to_o he_o will_v not_o vow_v single_a life_n and_o howsoever_o they_o prevail_v in_o other_o place_n before_o polidor_n say_v that_o the_o restraint_n of_o their_o marriage_n begin_v here_o first_o to_o be_v attempt_v ann_n 670._o hist_o ang._n l._n 6._o &_o the_o inventoribꝰ_n rerum_fw-la l._n 5._o &_o fabian_n p._n 293._o write_v that_o bishop_n &_o priest_n live_v here_o 1000_o year_n together_o with_o their_o wife_n no_o law_n be_v to_o the_o contrary_n yea_o auentinus_n l_o 5._o historiae_fw-la biorun_n say_v speak_v of_o hildebrands_n time_n which_o be_v 40._o year_n at_o
and_o so_o do_v tertullian_n the_o resurrectione_n carnis_fw-la cap._n 3._o say_v auferantur_fw-la ab_fw-la haereticis_fw-la quae_fw-la cum_fw-la aethnicis_fw-la sapiunt_fw-la ut_fw-la de_fw-fr scripture_n solis_fw-la svas_fw-la quaestiones_fw-la fistant_n &_o stare_v non_fw-la possunt_fw-la that_o be_v let_v those_o thing_n be_v take_v from_o heretic_n which_o they_o hold_v with_o the_o heathen_a that_o only_o by_o the_o scripture_n they_o may_v determine_v their_o question_n and_o they_o can_v stand_v and_o nothing_o be_v more_o usual_a and_o familiar_a with_o augustine_n against_o the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n then_o to_o call_v they_o for_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o question_n both_o whither_o he_o or_o they_o be_v of_o the_o true_a church_n &_o also_o whither_o of_o they_o have_v the_o truth_n to_o this_o way_n of_o trial_n by_o the_o scripture_n and_o therefore_o de_fw-la unitate_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la nolo_fw-la humanis_fw-la documentis_fw-la sed_fw-la divinis_fw-la oraculis_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la demonstrare_fw-la i_o will_v not_o make_v demonstration_n of_o the_o church_n by_o the_o writing_n of_o man_n but_o by_o the_o divine_a oracle_n say_v he_o cap_n 3._o &_o again_o there_o also_o he_o further_o add_v press_v the_o heretic_n with_o who_o he_o have_v there_o to_o do_v sunt_fw-la libri_fw-la dominici_fw-la quorun_v authoritati_fw-la utrique_fw-la consentimus_fw-la ibi_fw-la quaeramus_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la ibi_fw-la discutiamus_fw-la causam_fw-la nostram_fw-la that_o be_v there_o be_v certain_a book_n of_o the_o lord_n unto_o the_o authority_n whereof_o we_o both_o consent_n there_o let_v we_o seek_v the_o church_n there_o let_v we_o discuss_v our_o cause_n to_o the_o like_a effect_n he_o write_v in_o the_o 2_o chapter_n of_o that_o book_n and_o elsewhere_o very_a often_o unless_o therefore_o they_o will_v once_o be_v content_v to_o come_v to_o this_o trial_n of_o the_o controversy_n betwixt_o they_o &_o we_o we_o must_v needs_o tell_v they_o that_o they_o be_v not_o desirous_a in_o earnest_n ever_o to_o have_v it_o appear_v which_o of_o we_o have_v the_o better_a cause_n but_o as_o man_n who_o know_v in_o their_o own_o conscience_n that_o their_o cause_n be_v bad_a they_o labour_v to_o maintain_v the_o credit_n thereof_o as_o long_o as_o they_o can_v by_o cunning_a shift_n &_o delay_n but_o yet_o let_v they_o assure_v themselves_o as_o long_o as_o they_o shun_v this_o trial_n how_o cunning_o &_o colourable_o soever_o though_o simple_a fool_n already_o besot_v with_o superstition_n &_o bewitch_v with_o popish_a enchantment_n upon_o their_o bare_a word_n &_o stought_n brag_n that_o it_o be_v nothing_o but_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n that_o they_o teach_v may_v sometime_o believe_v they_o that_o yet_o withal_o those_o that_o have_v any_o wisdom_n at_o all_o by_o this_o mean_v they_o lose_v quite_o both_o the_o credit_n of_o themselves_o &_o their_o cause_n for_o faith_n be_v as_o it_o be_v not_o a_o waver_a &_o uncertain_a conceit_n &_o opinion_n of_o the_o thing_n believe_v but_o a_o most_o certain_a sure_a &_o infallible_a persuasion_n of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o how_o can_v any_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o doctrine_n that_o he_o believe_v be_v such_o as_o he_o may_v sound_o &_o firm_o rest_v upon_o for_o undoubted_a truth_n without_o evident_a ground_n thereof_o out_o of_o the_o write_v word_n of_o the_o lord_n in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n for_o thence_o only_a peter_n dare_v warrant_v the_o sincere_a milk_n which_o can_v deceive_v the_o child_n of_o god_n to_o be_v fetch_v 1._o pet._n 2_o 2._o &_o therefore_o that_o he_o will_v have_v they_o to_o desire_v as_o new_o bear_v babe_n do_v milk_n that_o they_o may_v grow_v up_o thereby_o and_o as_o for_o the_o writing_n &_o tradition_n of_o man_n beside_o have_v not_o &_o do_v not_o experience_n daily_o teach_v that_o they_o may_v not_o nor_o can_v challenge_v the_o preeminence_n &_o prerogative_n always_o to_o be_v free_a from_o error_n and_o every_o one_o that_o be_v a_o christian_n have_v learn_v that_o this_o prerogative_n all_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n have_v in_o the_o write_n thereof_o therein_o not_o to_o have_v err_v at_o al._n who_o therefore_o can_v be_v so_o simple_a unless_o the_o lord_n in_o his_o justice_n have_v blind_v he_o because_o he_o will_v not_o see_v the_o truth_n shine_v about_o he_o that_o he_o shall_v receive_v that_o for_o the_o sound_a catholic_a faith_n that_o he_o hear_v not_o first_o from_o point_n to_o point_n prove_v unto_o he_o so_o to_o be_v out_o of_o this_o undoubted_a certain_a word_n of_o god_n the_o canonical_a scripture_n what_o show_n or_o colour_n of_o proof_n soever_o otherwise_o be_v make_v thereof_o and_o this_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n can_v not_o but_o conceive_v &_o yet_o never_o once_o go_v about_o in_o this_o his_o discourse_n thus_o to_o countenance_v his_o cause_n &_o religion_n but_o as_o one_o loath_a to_o be_v bring_v to_o this_o trial_n he_o labour_v most_o earnest_o to_o discourage_v all_o man_n from_o appeal_n unto_o it_o &_o yet_o almost_o in_o every_o leaf_n brag_v and_o boast_v that_o both_o his_o church_n his_o doctrine_n and_o all_o be_v sound_a &_o catholic_a wherein_o howsoever_o he_o please_v himself_o in_o that_o his_o vain_a any_o indifferent_a man_n may_v see_v he_o have_v rather_o bewray_v the_o weakness_n of_o his_o own_o cause_n they_o any_o way_n whatsoever_o he_o have_v say_v otherwise_o impair_v the_o credit_n of_o we_o but_o how_o vain_o he_o have_v sweat_v even_o to_o the_o tire_a of_o himself_o &_o his_o reader_n about_o this_o point_n in_o many_o chapter_n that_o by_o the_o scripture_n controversy_n be_v not_o in_o the_o church_n to_o be_v try_v &_o determine_v when_o i_o come_v unto_o that_o place_n i_o shall_v god_n willing_a show_n more_o full_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n john_n de_fw-fr albine_n to_o turn_v my_o speech_n to_o you_o i_o have_v thus_o examine_v your_o answer_n to_o our_o demand_n how_o you_o come_v to_o your_o prelacy_n and_o office_n and_o have_v find_v the_o weakness_n and_o untruethe_n thereof_o such_o as_o that_o your_o call_n or_o come_v thereunto_o can_v claim_v no_o more_o credit_n thereby_o they_o the_o calling_z &_o come_v to_o their_o office_n among_o the_o arrian_n &_o greek_n who_o you_o count_v heretic_n and_o scismatiques_n can_v do_v because_o they_o can_v &_o can_v say_v as_o much_o and_o that_o as_o true_o for_o they_o as_o you_o have_v here_o say_v for_o you_o let_v we_o now_o proceed_v to_o the_o examination_n of_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n in_o this_o chapter_n quote_v by_o you_o &_o urge_v as_o you_o think_v strong_o to_o your_o purpose_n by_o the_o mat._n 5._o you_o be_v the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n etc._n etc._n by_o christ_n speak_v proper_o to_o his_o apostle_n you_o will_v seem_v to_o prove_v that_o therefore_o right_a succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n in_o the_o apostolic_a truth_n in_o all_o age_n in_o diverse_a part_n of_o the_o world_n have_v be_v ever_o clear_a &_o shine_a like_o a_o light_n set_v on_o a_o table_n &_o by_o that_o eph._n 4._o &_o esa_n 62._o with_o your_o book_n quote_v sap._n 61._o very_o wise_o you_o will_v infer_v that_o not_o only_o always_o until_o christ_n body_n come_v to_o full_a perfection_n there_o shall_v be_v doctor_n &_o pastor_n in_o the_o church_n to_o teach_v the_o truth_n which_o be_v the_o most_o that_o by_o those_o place_n can_v be_v prove_v but_o also_o that_o they_o and_o their_o congregation_n have_v ever_o be_v know_v &_o visible_a thereby_o doubtless_o mean_v so_o visible_a as_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o side_n do_v when_o to_o this_o end_n they_o allege_v these_o or_o the_o like_a place_n as_o that_o from_o time_n to_o time_n in_o all_o age_n man_n may_v be_v able_a to_o name_v they_o and_o their_o place_n whereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o you_o stretch_v these_o place_n and_o the_o word_n therein_o further_o they_o their_o native_a sense_n will_v bear_v for_o the_o first_o of_o these_o be_v proper_o to_o be_v understand_v of_o christ_n apostle_n only_o who_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o ministry_n &_o other_o grace_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o shall_v be_v pour_v &_o bestow_v upon_o they_o to_o beautify_v &_o strengthen_v their_o extraordinary_a ministry_n withal_o be_v there_o by_o christ_n comp●●●●●_n the_o light_n of_o the_o world_n to_o a_o light_a candle_n set_v upon_o a_o candlestick_n not_o put_v under_o a_o bushel_n lightning_n all_o in_o the_o house_n and_o to_o a_o city_n 〈◊〉_d on_o a_o hill_n which_o can_v not_o be_v bid_v all_o which_o afterward_o they_o in_o the_o execution_n of_o their_o apostleship_n and_o holy_a conversation_n prove_v to_o be_v ●●●tles_n true_o and_o just_o give_v they_o this_o be_v no_o pprophecy_n as_o yo●_n will_v make_v it_o that_o their_o shall_v be_v until_o the_o second_o come_v 〈◊〉_d christ_n a_o visible_a and_o
pollute_v &_o profane_v &_o vriah_n the_o priest_n join_v with_o the_o king_n in_o the_o erection_n of_o a_o new_a altar_n &_o in_o commit_v abomination_n before_o the_o lord_n though_o he_o be_v one_o that_o have_v his_o call_n by_o the_o ordinary_a way_n of_o succession_n of_o priest_n from_o aaron_n again_o though_o ezechiah_n succeed_v ahaz_n for_o his_o time_n do_v notable_o rid_v the_o church_n of_o the_o abomination_n wherw_o t_o his_o father_n have_v defile_v it_o yet_o when_o he_o be_v dead_a his_o son_n manasses_n &_o his_o son_n amon_n bring_v it_o to_o as_o ill_a a_o estate_n as_o ever_o it_o be_v in_o so_o much_o that_o from_z the_o beginning_n of_o manasses_n reign_n unto_o the_o 18_o of_o josiahs_n the_o book_n of_o the_o law_n of_o the_o lord_n be_v lose_v which_o be_v well_o nigh_o 80_o year_n for_o they_o it_o be_v note_v that_o hilki●h_v the_o priest_n find_v it_o 2._o king_n 22._o in_o manasses_n his_o time_n it_o be_v evident_a idolatry_n open_o prevail_v &_o the_o whole_a synagogue_n save_o a_o few_o prophet_n &_o their_o follower_n err_v if_o we_o proceed_v during_o the_o 70_o year_n captivity_n in_o babylon_n what_o visible_a &_o apparent_a show_n of_o any_o succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n can_v we_o find_v the_o join_v together_o in_o the_o exercise_n of_o god_n religion_n be_v not_o their_o temple_n then_o destroy_v &_o consequent_o do_v not_o the_o public_a exercise_n of_o their_o religion_n which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n be_v tie_v thereunto_o cease_v as_o it_o be_v prophesy_v by_o hosea_n ca._n 3._o &_o therefore_o lament_v by_o jeremy_n ca._n 3._o lan_n when_o christ_n our_o saviour_n cane_n into_o the_o world_n sure_o than_o god_n have_v his_o church_n for_o it_o be_v a_o most_o certain_a article_n of_o our_o faith_n that_o since_o it_o begin_v it_o have_v never_o cease_v nor_o never_o shall_v &_o yet_o what_o visible_a succession_n of_o pastor_n and_o priest_n be_v there_o they_o in_o possession_n of_o souno_fw-it religion_n have_v not_o they_o as_o evident_o appear_v by_o the_o story_n write_v by_o the_o euamgelist_n that_o be_v in_o the_o visible_a personal_a succession_n corrupt_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o messiah_n both_o concern_v his_o person_n and_o office_n so_o that_o they_o be_v the_o deadly_a enemy_n that_o he_o have_v but_o you_o will_v say_v perhaps_o that_o though_o these_o thing_n be_v thus_o in_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n yet_o it_o may_v not_o be_v so_o in_o the_o church_n now_o in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o new_a and_o why_o so_o howsoever_o otherwise_o there_o be_v some_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o church_n then_o and_o now_o in_o respect_n of_o the_o more_o clear_a revelation_n now_o then_o then_o of_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o messiah_n whereof_o that_o heb._n 8.6_o be_v by_o soon_o understand_v yet_o in_o this_o respect_n you_o shall_v never_o be_v able_a by_o the_o word_n write_v or_o any_o true_a story_n to_o prove_v any_o necessary_a difference_n unless_o it_o be_v that_o god_n have_v tie_v then_o his_o promise_n to_o that_o peculiar_a people_n &_o his_o service_n in_o great_a part_n to_o their_o temple_n and_o that_o he_o have_v ordain_v among_o they_o a_o priesthood_n to_o continue_v by_o natural_a succession_n so_o that_o the_o church_n they_o have_v more_o right_a to_o plead_v visible_a succession_n than_o now_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n thus_o much_o be_v gain_v by_o these_o story_n of_o the_o church_n in_o the_o time_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n that_o this_o outward_a clearness_n &_o visible_a succession_n you_o talk_v of_o be_v not_o a_o inseparable_a note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n for_o thereby_o we_o have_v see_v it_o separate_v oftentimes_o from_o it_o and_o unless_o man_n be_v peevish_o dispose_v to_o maintain_v a_o manifest_a untruth_n convict_v so_o to_o be_v both_o by_o scripture_n and_o experience_n you_o will_v see_v &_o grant_v that_o it_o be_v as_o separable_a from_o the_o church_n now_o since_o christ_n for_o be_v it_o not_o plain_o prophesy_v 2._o thess_n 2._o that_o there_o shall_v come_v a_o depart_n from_o the_o faith_n by_o the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n and_o that_o very_o great_a and_o effectual_a and_o lest_o you_o shall_v babish_o &_o foolish_o as_o many_o of_o you_o do_v understand_v this_o of_o a_o antichrist_n that_o towards_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n shall_v come_v and_o reign_v &_o seduce_v man_n 3_o year_n &_o a_o half_a mark_v that_o here_o paul_n tell_v we_o in_o his_o time_n that_o this_o mystery_n of_o iniquity_n do_v already_o work_v which_o it_o do_v in_o that_o there_o be_v false_a apostle_n there_o that_o teach_v man_n to_o seek_v justification_n partly_o by_o faith_n &_o partly_o by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n as_o it_o appear_v by_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o galathians_n &_o weigh_v that_o he_o attribute_v unto_o he_o such_o thing_n as_o can_v not_o be_v bring_v to_o pass_v in_o that_o space_n &_o last_o consider_v that_o he_o teach_v that_o though_o he_o shall_v be_v detect_v and_o fall_v into_o a_o consumption_n by_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n mouth_n yet_o he_o shall_v not_o be_v full_o abolish_v before_o christ_n second_o come_v all_o which_o make_v it_o most_o evident_a that_o paul_n here_o prophesi_v of_o a_o long_a last_a antichristianity_n which_o shall_v trouble_v the_o church_n them_z you_o of_o 3_o year_n &_o a_o half_a continuance_n but_o least_o yet_o this_o notwitstanding_n you_o shall_v imagine_v that_o the_o fulfil_n of_o this_o prophecy_n &_o your_o fancy_n of_o perpetual_a clearness_n &_o universality_n of_o the_o church_n may_v stand_v always_o together_o s._n john_n in_o his_o revelation_n describe_v as_o you_o all_o must_v confess_v the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n see_v she_o in_o a_o vision_n by_o the_o great_a 7_o head_a dragon_n drive_v into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o there_o glad_a to_o be_v feed_v for_o a_o season_n chap._n 12._o and_o he_o see_v the_o babilonish_a harlot_n the_o true_a pattern_n of_o your_o romish_a prelacy_n by_o which_o harlot_n he_o most_o notable_o set_v forth_o antichrist_n &_o his_o kingdom_n commit_v fornication_n not_o with_o a_o few_o but_o with_o the_o king_n and_o inhabitant_n of_o the_o earth_n not_o rule_v or_o sit_v over_o a_o few_o but_o as_o the_o angel_n there_o expound_v the_o water_n whereon_o she_o be_v see_v to_o sit_v people_n multitudes_z nation_n &_o tongue_n apoc._n 17_o all_o which_o lay_v together_o do_v plain_o show_v that_o after_o christ_n there_o shall_v grow_v such_o a_o defection_n from_o the_o faith_n in_o the_o world_n by_o the_o mean_n of_o antichrist_n that_o during_o the_o flourish_n of_o his_o kingdom_n the_o true_a church_n and_o her_o pastor_n shall_v be_v drive_v into_o the_o wilderness_n and_o so_o for_o that_o time_n shall_v have_v in_o comparison_n of_o antichrist_n follower_n small_a visibility_n and_o show_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o the_o world_n which_o we_o say_v and_o constant_o be_v able_a to_o defend_v have_v be_v verify_v in_o the_o late_a flourish_n of_o your_o romish_a prelate_n beside_o view_v the_o story_n of_o the_o church_n &_o the_o chronicle_n of_o time_n and_o you_o shall_v be_v drive_v to_o confess_v that_o though_o the_o church_n have_v have_v always_o her_o two_o witness_n re._n 11_o to_o testify_v to_o the_o truth_n &_o that_o they_o never_o can_v be_v extinguish_v quite_o by_o tyrant_n yet_o she_o have_v often_o be_v drive_v from_o carry_v any_o great_a show_n of_o visibility_n in_o the_o world_n for_o certain_a marble_n pillar_n at_o salmantike_a erect_v in_o the_o hill_n of_o s._n bartholomew_n do_v witness_n that_o diocletian_n jovius_fw-la and_o maximinianus_fw-la herculeus_n imagine_v when_o they_o cause_v they_o to_o be_v erect_v that_o they_o then_o have_v quite_o lay_v the_o honour_n of_o christ_n for_o ever_o in_o the_o dust_n and_o as_o it_o shall_v seem_v by_o the_o circumscription_n that_o they_o thereupon_o cause_v to_o be_v engrave_v they_o set_v they_o up_o even_o of_o purpose_n to_o brag_v that_o they_o have_v like_o great_a conqueror_n quite_o extinguish_v as_o they_o term_v it_o the_o superstition_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o will_v never_o have_v do_v if_o either_o they_o or_o their_o favourite_n have_v then_o see_v a_o visible_a succession_n of_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n among_o they_o and_o have_v know_v their_o name_n and_o where_o to_o have_v find_v they_o if_o we_o go_v on_o to_o the_o time_n that_o the_o arrian_n most_o flourish_v we_o shall_v read_v that_o the_o emperor_n constantius_n say_v to_o liberius_n quota_fw-la pars_fw-la es_fw-la tu_fw-la orbis_fw-la terrarum_fw-la qui_fw-la solus_fw-la facis_fw-la cum_fw-la homine_fw-la scelerato_fw-la meaning_n athanasius_n ecclesiast_fw-la hist_o theodoreti_n lib._n 2._o cap_n 16._o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o then_o the_o
catholic_n that_o withstand_v the_o arrian_n in_o the_o sight_n of_o this_o emperor_n have_v but_o a_o poor_a visibility_n to_o brag_v of_o yea_o piggius_n your_o own_o man_n confess_v hierar_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 6._o that_o their_o poison_n have_v defile_v not_o a_o part_n but_o almost_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o so_o much_o that_o almost_o all_o the_o bishop_n not_o only_o of_o the_o east_n but_o also_o of_o the_o west_n by_o one_o mean_n or_o other_o be_v blind_v and_o no_o small_a time_n continue_v this_o heresy_n and_o this_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o brag_v then_o as_o much_o of_o visible_a succession_n of_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o universality_n as_o ever_o since_o you_o have_v do_v call_v the_o true_a christian_n homousian_o as_o you_o do_v now_o lutheran_n &_o zwinglian_o as_o appear_v in_o the_o writing_n of_o those_o that_o write_v against_o they_o you_o may_v see_v therefore_o that_o these_o weapon_n or_o stay_v be_v common_a to_o you_o with_o blasphemous_a and_o condemn_a heretic_n these_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o experiment_n therefore_o cause_v august_n upon_o the_o 10._o psalm_n &_o 78._o epist_n to_o compare_v the_o church_n unto_o the_o moon_n which_o beside_o the_o monthly_a wayning_n suffer_v oftentimes_o ecclipsy_n and_o sure_o unless_o we_o be_v too_o too_o wilful_a all_o these_o thing_n together_o may_v make_v we_o out_o of_o doubt_n that_o the_o church_n of_o god_n both_o before_o christ_n &_o since_o have_v often_o fail_v to_o carry_v any_o such_o outward_a visible_a show_n in_o theey_n of_o the_o world_n that_o it_o be_v so_o easy_a a_o matter_n to_o make_v at_o all_o time_n demonstration_n of_o her_o pastor_n &_o teacher_n who_o they_o be_v and_o where_o they_o teach_v as_o you_o our_o adversary_n will_v bear_v the_o world_n in_o hand_n it_o be_v and_o therefore_o for_o answer_v to_o this_o chapter_n to_o any_o reasonable_a man_n this_o be_v sufficient_a the_o ii_o chapter_n saint_n other_o saint_n thus_o you_o be_v fall_v from_o prove_v that_o you_o be_v come_v to_o your_o place_n by_o the_o ordinary_a call_n of_o such_o as_o have_v ri_fw-la ht_o succeed_v one_o another_o both_o in_o person_n office_n &_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n you_o shall_v have_v prove_v to_o show_v that_o there_o have_v always_o be_v and_o must_v be_v a_o succession_n of_o pastor_n to_o continue_v &_o settle_v man_n in_o the_o truth_n which_o be_v another_o point_n for_o though_o this_o be_v grant_v you_o yet_o you_o have_v not_o thereby_o win_v the_o other_o paul_n follow_v this_o discourse_n in_o the_o four_o chapter_n unto_o the_o ephesian_n where_o as_o he_o do_v declare_v unto_o we_o the_o fruit_n that_o do_v proceed_v of_o this_o succession_n of_o pastor_n and_o of_o the_o perseverance_n of_o the_o reasonable_a sheep_n in_o one_o kind_n of_o spiritual_a doctrine_n call_v the_o unity_n of_o faith_n for_o he_o say_v that_o god_n establish_v this_o order_n to_o that_o end_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v like_o light_a child_n antichrist_n child_n the_o more_o be_v your_o sin_n that_o have_v suffer_v yourselves_o to_o be_v carry_v away_o from_o the_o truth_n by_o the_o enticement_n of_o antichrist_n carry_v away_o with_o every_o blast_n of_o false_a doctrine_n through_o the_o subtility_n of_o man_n &_o their_o crafty_a word_n full_a of_o deceit_n in_o these_o word_n you_o do_v see_v how_o the_o apostle_n do_v declare_v unto_o we_o the_o counsel_n &_o the_o intention_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n ghost_n ghost_n if_o you_o have_v be_v constant_a in_o this_o faith_n we_o and_o you_o have_v be_v all_o of_o one_o mind_n and_o unless_o we_o can_v ●ustifie_v our_o faith_n to_o be_v even_o so_o ground_v as_o you_o say_v we_o will_v forsake_v it_o and_o join_v with_o you_o but_o if_o we_o can_v than_o you_o be_v to_o forsake_v you_o &_o to_o join_v with_o we_o if_o you_o will_v answer_v the_o intention_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n i_o mean_v that_o we_o shall_v be_v constant_a in_o our_o faith_n the_o which_o be_v ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n &_o interpret_v &_o declare_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o doctor_n &_o pastor_n that_o successive_o have_v continue_v in_o one_o kind_n of_o faith_n &_o catholic_n religion_n from_o the_o first_o time_n that_o it_o be_v preach_v with_o out_o turn_v with_o every_o wind_n but_o rather_o that_o we_o ought_v to_o stand_v firm_a &_o stable_a here_o be_v to_o be_v note_v that_o when_o the_o apostle_n do_v tell_v how_o he_o have_v leave_v we_o pastor_n &_o doctor_n to_o warn_v we_o of_o the_o subtlety_n of_o false_a teacher_n he_o do_v use_v a_o certain_a greek_a word_n very_o apt_a for_o this_o purpose_n the_o which_o have_v in_o english_a the_o signification_n of_o the_o be_v the_o i_o will_v not_o you_o have_v forget_v this_o note_n for_o it_o do_v lively_o paint_v out_o your_o doctor_n which_o by_o this_o their_o skill_n in_o cog_a and_o cozen_v do_v make_v the_o scripture_n to_o have_v a_o flexible_a sense_n always_o suitable_a to_o the_o practice_n of_o your_o romish_a church_n how_o variable_a so_o ever_o that_o be_v play_v or_o cog_a at_z dise_z and_o even_o as_o he_o that_o have_v no_o great_a skill_n if_o he_o play_v with_o such_o a_o one_o he_o will_v soon_o lose_v his_o money_n because_o the_o other_o can_v cast_v what_o he_o will_v even_o so_o if_o a_o simple_a man_n be_v unlearned_a do_v chance_n to_o talk_v with_o such_o a_o one_o as_o can_v cog_v or_o to_o speak_v plain_o false_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n he_o may_v soon_o be_v deceive_v as_o we_o see_v it_o daily_o happen_v to_o many_o that_o play_v away_o &_o put_v in_o hazard_n the_o rest_n of_o all_o their_o spiritual_a inheritance_n i_o mean_v the_o faith_n which_o have_v be_v leave_v to_o they_o by_o their_o father_n from_o age_n to_o age_n since_o christ_n time_n thus_o have_v the_o arrian_n the_o nestorian_n &_o diverse_a other_o heretic_n deceive_v many_o a_o man_n as_o i_o will_v show_v more_o at_o large_a hereafter_o the_o ii_o chapter_n in_o this_o second_o chapter_n you_o observe_v further_o out_o of_o the_o 4_o to_o the_o ephe._n before_o allege_v that_o god_n establish_v a_o ministry_n in_o his_o church_n that_o we_o shall_v not_o be_v like_o child_n carry_v away_o with_o every_o blast_n of_o vain_a doctrine_n through_o the_o subtlety_n of_o man_n &_o their_o crafty_a word_n full_a of_o deceit_n whereupon_o you_o infer_v that_o thereby_o god_n have_v teach_v we_o to_o be_v constant_a in_o our_o faith_n ground_v upon_o the_o word_n of_o god_n interpret_v &_o declare_v unto_o we_o by_o the_o doctor_n &_o pastor_n that_o successive_o have_v continue_v from_o the_o begin_n in_o the_o same_z who_o of_o we_o ever_o either_o write_v speak_v or_o think_v otherwise_o but_o herein_o be_v your_o subtlety_n that_o you_o take_v this_o still_a for_o grant_v which_o indeed_o be_v the_o main_a question_n betwixt_o we_o and_o for_o determination_n whereof_o on_o your_o side_n you_o have_v as_o yet_o say_v nothing_o that_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n which_o your_o synagogue_n be_v in_o possession_n of_o be_v that_o faith_n which_o you_o speak_v of_o which_o we_o constant_o deny_v affirm_v the_o faith_n &_o religion_n which_o we_o profess_v to_o be_v that_o indeed_o wherein_o the_o apostle_n will_v have_v we_o constant_a and_o settle_a and_o which_o have_v always_o continue_v in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o justify_v out_o of_o the_o word_n write_v by_o the_o true_a pastor_n thereof_o in_o one_o place_n or_o other_o from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o therefore_o herein_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o but_o the_o we_o understand_v it_o of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n make_v as_o much_o for_o we_o as_o for_o you_o we_o grant_v you_o also_o that_o false_a teacher_n and_o wrong_a interpreter_n of_o the_o scripture_n worthy_o there_o may_v have_v their_o subtlety_n express_v by_o a_o word_n import_v cog_a or_o cozen_n but_o then_o still_o we_o add_v that_o your_o teacher_n a_o long_a time_n have_v be_v the_o man_n that_o have_v use_v and_o yet_o do_v use_v that_o cog_a trick_n which_o if_o it_o will_v please_v you_o once_o by_o the_o sound_a rule_n of_o interpret_n the_o scripture_n to_o let_v your_o interpretation_n and_o we_o be_v examine_v we_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o make_v most_o manifest_a unto_o all_o man_n quick_o the_o iii_o chapter_n the_o place_n that_o i_o have_v quote_v of_o the_o apostle_n do_v show_v how_o dangerous_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v to_o fall_v into_o the_o hand_n of_o such_o cogger_n of_o the_o scripture_n &_o likewise_o how_o certain_a a_o thing_n it_o be_v us._n be_v such_o interpretation_n of_o the_o doctor_n we_o will_v most_o willing_o follow_v and_o if_o you_o shall_v you_o will_v
oft_o in_o this_o your_o book_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o your_o side_n continual_o bear_v the_o simple_a reader_n and_o unlearned_a christian_a in_o hand_n that_o before_o luther_n there_o be_v none_o of_o our_o religion_n that_o have_v so_o condemn_v your_o church_n and_o religion_n as_o we_o do_v i_o will_v vouchsafe_v for_o the_o better_a enable_v of_o every_o one_o that_o shall_v read_v this_o my_o answer_n to_o see_v your_o vanity_n and_o impiety_n though_o this_o which_o i_o have_v note_v already_o be_v sufficient_a to_o lay_v open_a your_o folly_n to_o proceed_v yet_o somewhat_o further_o in_o this_o matter_n wherefore_o to_o go_v on_o in_o the_o course_n of_o time_n though_o your_o popish_a church_n have_v be_v in_o her_o ruff_n and_o at_o the_o high_o that_o ever_o she_o be_v this_o latter_a 400_o year_n yet_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o even_o in_o this_o time_n from_o time_n to_o time_n and_o that_o in_o sundry_a place_n that_o have_v join_v with_o we_o against_o you_o &_o that_o therefore_o there_o be_v no_o such_o newness_n or_o strangeness_n in_o our_o religion_n a_o do_v do_n as_o you_o will_v make_v the_o ignorant_a believe_v for_o in_o the_o day_n of_o gregory_n the_o 9_o in_o the_o year_n 1230_o the_o greek_a church_n and_o other_o eastern_a church_n do_v quite_o forsake_v communion_n with_o you_o who_o ever_o since_o join_v with_o we_o in_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n against_o you_o as_o namely_o in_o withstand_v the_o supremacy_n of_o your_o romish_a bishop_n as_o appear_v not_o only_o by_o one_o epistle_n that_o germanus_n petriarch_n of_o constantinople_n write_v unto_o the_o pope_n in_o the_o year_n 1237_o but_o also_o by_o a_o large_a book_n write_v about_o the_o year_n 1384_o by_o nilus_n archbishop_n of_o thessalonica_n wherein_o he_o do_v not_o only_o confute_v his_o supremacy_n even_o as_o we_o do_v but_o also_o he_o enueigh_v against_o all_o those_o that_o hold_v communion_n with_o the_o popish_a or_o latin_a church_n and_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o ancient_a record_n in_o the_o church_n of_o herford_n wherein_o 29_o of_o the_o article_n wherein_o they_o differ_v from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v set_v down_o they_o join_v not_o only_o with_o we_o in_o this_o point_n in_o separate_a themselves_o from_o the_o romish_a church_n &_o in_o deny_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n which_o be_v the_o very_a foundation_n of_o your_o church_n and_o religion_n but_o also_o in_o deny_v purgatory_n and_o mass_n for_o the_o dead_a in_o hold_v it_o lawful_a for_o their_o minister_n to_o enjoy_v the_o benefit_n of_o matrimony_n in_o not_o use_v any_o private_a mass_n in_o not_o deny_v the_o cup_n to_o any_o that_o receive_v in_o not_o minister_a the_o communion_n in_o private_a house_n in_o not_o use_v extreme_a unction_n and_o in_o sundry_a other_o point_n and_o by_o diverse_a epistle_n write_v from_o thence_o of_o late_a extant_a in_o print_n both_o in_o greek_a and_o latin_a to_o chitreus_n and_o other_o german_n it_o evident_o appear_v that_o they_o join_v with_o we_o against_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o many_o other_o great_a and_o weighty_a point_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o that_o great_a hope_n there_o be_v that_o they_o may_v easy_o be_v bring_v to_o join_v with_o we_o in_o the_o rest_n beside_o these_o eastern_a church_n even_o here_o in_o these_o western_a part_n evident_a it_o be_v that_o there_o have_v be_v many_o great_a learned_a and_o famous_a person_n with_o innumerable_a follower_n at_o all_o time_n from_o age_n to_o age_n in_o these_o latter_a 400_o year_n when_o the_o tyranny_n of_o your_o pope_n to_z repress_v they_o have_v be_v the_o great_a and_o strong_a that_o ever_o it_o be_v which_o yet_o have_v open_o with_o we_o stand_v forth_o against_o they_o and_o their_o religion_n for_o frederick_n the_o second_o as_o diverse_a other_o emperor_n have_v be_v before_o he_o as_o namely_o constantine_n the_o 5._o leo_n his_o son_n and_o constantine_n the_o 6_o in_o the_o east_n and_o henry_n the_o 4_o and_o 5_o in_o the_o west_n be_v a_o notable_a antagonist_n of_o the_o 3_o pope_n in_o his_o time_n contend_v against_o they_o to_o maintain_v the_o authority_n of_o christian_a prince_n against_o their_o usurp_a supremacy_n over_o they_o about_o the_o year_n 1260_o as_o notorious_o the_o chronicle_n of_o those_o time_n write_v by_o your_o own_o man_n platina_n sabelicus_n and_o other_o declare_v and_o 20_o year_n before_o that_o krantzius_n testify_v in_o his_o history_n that_o there_o be_v many_o that_o preach_v open_o in_o suevia_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v a_o heretic_n his_o clergy_n symoniake_v and_o general_o they_o all_o seducer_n of_o the_o people_n ten_o year_n after_o that_o flourish_v arnoldus_fw-la de_n nouâ_fw-la villâ_fw-la a_o spaniard_n who_o teach_v that_o satan_n have_v they_o seduce_v the_o world_n that_o the_o faith_n they_o teach_v be_v but_o such_o as_o devil_n have_v mean_v belike_o a_o bare_a historical_a faith_n that_o the_o pope_n lead_v man_n to_o hell_n that_o he_o and_o his_o clergy_n do_v falsify_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n that_o mass_n be_v naught_o &_o not_o to_o be_v say_v for_o the_o dead_a etc._n etc._n and_o therefore_o your_o popish_a church_n condemn_v he_o for_o a_o heretic_n much_o what_o about_o the_o same_o time_n be_v gulielmus_fw-la de_n sancto_fw-la amore_fw-la a_o master_n and_o chief_a ruler_n then_o in_o paris_n who_o go_v as_o far_o as_o arnoldus_fw-la apply_v the_o same_o scripture_n which_o concern_v antichrist_n as_o we_o do_v to_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o clergy_n and_o therefore_o he_o also_o be_v condemn_v for_o a_o heretic_n and_o his_o book_n burn_v by_o your_o popish_a rout_n and_o in_o the_o year_n 1260_o laurentius_n anglicus_n a_o master_n of_o paris_n also_o take_v this_o william_n part_n against_o the_o pope_n &_o write_v a_o book_n in_o his_o defence_n in_o the_o year_n 1290_o petrus_n johamnes_n a_o minorite_n direct_o preach_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n and_o rome_n great_a babylon_n and_o therefore_o he_o be_v burn_v after_o he_o be_v dead_a 30_o year_n and_o more_o before_o this_o robert_z grosthead_n a_o famous_a learned_a man_n and_o bishop_n of_o lincoln_n for_o he_o die_v in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o two_o hundred_o fifty_o three_o be_v a_o great_a withstander_n of_o the_o pope_n tyranny_n and_o three_o day_n before_o his_o death_n have_v conference_n with_o his_o clergy_n he_o labour_v to_o make_v they_o see_v by_o sundry_a demonstration_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o his_o do_n antichristian_a king_n philip_n of_o france_n about_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o be_v a_o great_a withstander_n of_o the_o supremacy_n which_o now_o the_o pope_n challenge_v and_o a_o resister_n in_o his_o dominion_n of_o sundry_a of_o his_o enormity_n and_o william_n nagareta_n and_o the_o prelate_n of_o france_n then_o join_v with_o their_o king_n against_o the_o pope_n grosthead_n this_o king_n philip_n and_o his_o clergy_n as_o afterward_o king_n edward_n the_o 3._o king_n of_o england_n in_o the_o year_n 1346_o despise_v the_o pope_n curse_n &_o appeal_v from_o he_o to_o god_n there_o be_v in_o a_o ancient_a chronicle_n of_o s._n albon_n a_o notable_a epistle_n of_o one_o cassiodorus_n to_o the_o church_n of_o england_n wherein_o be_v lay_v forth_o a_o number_n of_o lamentable_a abuse_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o twenty_o eight_o in_o the_o extravagant_n we_o read_v that_o marsillus_n patavinus_n johannes_n de_fw-fr ganduno_n michael_n chesenas_n petrus_n de_fw-fr carborea_n and_o johannes_n de_fw-fr poliaco_n all_o great_a learned_a man_n be_v condemn_v by_o the_o pope_n for_o preach_v against_o his_o supremacy_n and_o other_o error_n of_o that_o church_n of_o he_o about_o the_o year_n 1326._o there_o be_v they_o also_o many_o learned_a man_n more_o that_o dispute_v &_o write_v against_o his_o supremacy_n &_o which_o take_v part_n with_o ludovicke_a the_o emperor_n against_o he_o as_o william_n occam_n luitpoldus_n andreas_n landanensis_fw-la vlricus_fw-la hangenor_n the_o emperor_n treasurer_n and_o other_o dante_n be_v live_n in_o the_o year_n one_o thousand_o three_o hundred_o write_v against_o the_o pope_n the_o order_n of_o religious_a man_n and_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o decree_n say_v that_o these_o be_v three_o great_a enemy_n to_o the_o truth_n he_o flat_o have_v leave_v in_o write_v in_o his_o canticle_n of_o purgatory_n that_o the_o pope_n of_o a_o pastor_n be_v become_v a_o wolf_n &_o that_o he_o be_v the_o whoar_n of_o babylon_n in_o the_o year_n 1350._o gregory_n ariminensis_n andreas_n de_fw-fr castro_n and_o burdianus_n teach_v as_o we_o do_v against_o your_o doctrine_n of_o freewill_n and_o merit_n taulerus_n then_o a_o preacher_n in_o argentine_n preach_v open_o against_o your_o doctrine_n
hundred_o year_n have_v be_v at_o contention_n &_o yet_o doubtless_o be_v not_o agree_v about_o the_o conception_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n whither_o it_o be_v in_o sin_n or_o no_o &_o about_o diverse_a &_o sundry_a other_o great_a mystery_n of_o their_o religion_n yea_o even_o in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n wherein_o they_o will_v seem_v to_o be_v at_o great_a unity_n yet_o if_o a_o man_n be_v dispose_v to_o note_v the_o diverse_a opinion_n therein_o among_o themselves_o he_o shall_v scarce_o ever_o know_v when_o to_o make_v a_o end_n for_o there_o be_v some_o of_o they_o that_o hold_v that_o there_o christ_n body_n be_v tear_v and_o chew_v with_o the_o tooth_n as_o it_o appear_v in_o the_o recantation_n that_o they_o prescribe_v to_o beringarius_n other_o as_o guymund_n de_fw-fr consecra_fw-la dist_n 2._o think_v that_o too_o gross_a some_o as_o gardener_n will_v have_v hoc_fw-la to_o signify_v individuum_fw-la vagum_fw-la a_o certain_a thing_n that_o be_v but_o they_o can_v tell_v what_o other_o now_o will_v have_v it_o to_o note_v that_o which_o be_v under_o the_o accident_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n scotus_n and_o innocentius_n the_o four_o hold_v consecration_n to_o be_v not_o by_o the_o five_o word_n but_o by_o christ_n blessing_n other_o hold_v now_o that_o it_o be_v do_v by_o the_o five_o word_n when_o it_o come_v to_o the_o eat_n some_o hold_n that_o it_o enter_v the_o mouth_n but_o no_o further_o other_o will_n have_v it_o to_o pass_v into_o the_o stomach_n but_o not_o into_o the_o gut_n other_o will_v have_v it_o to_o go_v thither_o also_o infinite_a be_v the_o question_n that_o they_o be_v fall_v into_o about_o this_o matter_n and_o in_o their_o last_o conventicle_n at_o trident_n where_o they_o have_v hope_v to_o have_v heal_v all_o these_o sore_n yet_o even_o then_o there_o grow_v a_o great_a contention_n betwixt_o two_o great_a captain_n of_o they_o archbishop_n catharinus_n and_o friar_n soto_n and_o that_o about_o no_o small_a matter_n namely_o about_o assure_a confidence_n of_o the_o favour_n of_o god_n predestination_n original_a sin_n freewill_n and_o such_o like_a matter_n insomuch_o that_o for_o all_o the_o council_n can_v do_v for_o six_o year_n together_o they_o continual_o go_v on_o in_o write_v book_n bitter_o one_o against_o another_o the_o same_o catharin_n also_o write_v a_o book_n against_o caietan_n a_o cardinal_n lay_v therein_o to_o his_o charge_n 200._o error_n contention_n also_o the_o same_o catharin_n have_v with_o franciscus_n torrensis_n a_o man_n otherwise_o of_o his_o own_o faction_n about_o single_a life_n of_o priest_n &_o residence_n of_o bishop_n both_o which_o the_o one_o hold_v be_v as_o he_o teach_v therein_o warrant_v by_o god_n word_n the_o other_o stout_o hold_v the_o contrary_a in_o the_o article_n of_o justification_n free_a grace_n and_o original_a sin_n ruard_v tapper_n a_o great_a papist_n and_o deane_n of_o colen_n in_o his_o second_o tome_n write_v against_o piggius_n a_o archpiller_n of_o that_o synagogue_n contend_v to_o prove_v that_o he_o be_v deceive_v and_o err_v in_o those_o point_n but_o what_o shall_v i_o take_v upon_o i_o to_o reckon_v up_o the_o contention_n and_o controversy_n that_o be_v among_o they_o for_o certain_a it_o be_v they_o be_v so_o many_o and_o infinite_a that_o a_o man_n if_o he_o be_v dispose_v may_v write_v a_o book_n of_o a_o whole_a choir_n of_o paper_n consist_v only_o of_o a_o bare_a recital_n of_o the_o difference_n of_o opinion_n that_o their_o writer_n have_v set_v down_o in_o their_o own_o book_n about_o point_n and_o question_n of_o religion_n and_o yet_o see_v as_o though_o there_o never_o have_v be_v jar_n among_o they_o they_o brag_v of_o unity_n among_o the_o simple_a and_o labour_v our_o disgrace_n with_o the_o objection_n of_o variety_n of_o opinion_n among_o we_o especial_o about_o this_o one_o point_n of_o the_o manner_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n in_o the_o sacrament_n but_o see_v now_o hereby_o in_o part_n you_o see_v at_o what_o agreement_n they_o be_v i_o hope_v you_o think_v it_o reason_n that_o they_o shall_v agree_v better_o amongst_o themselves_o before_o they_o insult_v any_o more_o against_o we_o for_o our_o disagreement_n last_o they_o do_v we_o wrong_n in_o seek_v to_o disgrace_v we_o and_o our_o religion_n in_o that_o since_o luther_n begin_v to_o preach_v there_o have_v rise_v up_o diverse_a and_o sundry_a fond_a and_o foolish_a heretic_n for_o we_o read_v that_o immediate_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n even_o within_o few_o year_n epiphanius_n by_o his_o time_n can_v reckon_v up_o eighty_o and_o augustine_n more_o several_a error_n and_o heresy_n which_o in_o effect_n do_v grow_v together_o with_o the_o gospel_n and_o yet_o the_o gospel_n not_o to_o be_v blame_v therefore_o but_o satan_n who_o where_o the_o good_a seedsman_n sow_v good_a seed_n use_v to_o sow_v also_o his_o tare_n matthew_n the_o thirteen_o and_o yet_o it_o seem_v by_o saint_n johns_n prevention_n of_o this_o objection_n that_o some_o aswell_o affect_v to_o the_o gospel_n then_o belike_o as_o you_o be_v now_o be_v ready_a hereby_o to_o discredit_v both_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o doctrine_n but_o johns_n answer_n be_v they_o go_v out_o from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v be_v of_o we_o they_o will_v have_v continue_v with_o us._n but_o this_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o they_o be_v not_o all_o of_o we_o 1._o john_n 3._o even_o so_o we_o answer_v you_o concern_v those_o that_o you_o say_v have_v any_o where_n since_o luther_n rise_v among_o we_o and_o fall_v into_o heresy_n yet_o further_o so_o much_o the_o more_o apparent_a be_v the_o wrong_n that_o you_o offer_v we_o in_o this_o behalf_n in_o that_o not_o only_o you_o know_v we_o shun_v communion_n with_o they_o as_o well_o as_o you_o but_o that_o also_o it_o evident_o have_v appear_v to_o the_o world_n that_o we_o have_v be_v both_o the_o first_o and_o the_o forward_a in_o detect_v of_o they_o and_o in_o confute_v of_o they_o from_o time_n to_o time_n wherefore_o i_o conclude_v that_o hitherto_o you_o have_v say_v nothing_o of_o any_o force_n for_o the_o justification_n either_o of_o your_o vocation_n church_n or_o religion_n the_o v._o chapter_n the_o like_a unto_o this_o be_v confirm_v by_o vincensius_fw-la lyrinensis_n of_o who_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o for_o he_o say_v in_o the_o book_n above_o name_v that_o that_o person_n ought_v to_o be_v esteem_v a_o true_a catholic_a antiquity_n catholic_a this_o rule_n be_v sound_a and_o good_a but_o it_o quite_o overthrow_v popery_n because_o it_o can_v be_v prove_v to_o be_v this_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n for_o ●he_v contrary_a be_v certain_a both_o by_o scripture_n and_o all_o sound_a antiquity_n that_o have_v nothing_o in_o great_a commendation_n than_o the_o true_a religion_n of_o the_o catholic_n faith_n yea_o although_o it_o be_v the_o wise_a man_n in_o the_o world_n and_o the_o great_a philosopher_n and_o the_o fair_a speaker_n that_o ever_o be_v if_o he_o come_v to_o speak_v against_o the_o old_a doctrine_n that_o have_v be_v teach_v we_o of_o our_o forefather_n time_n out_o of_o mind_n we_o ought_v say_v he_o to_o disdain_v that_o learned_a clerk_n with_o all_o his_o philosophy_n &_o cunning_a &_o to_o hold_v ourselves_o to_o the_o ancient_a opinion_n of_o the_o church_n the_o which_o have_v continue_v until_o this_o present_a day_n religion_n day_n but_o such_o as_o all_o popery_n and_o no_o part_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o if_o that_o now_o one_o shall_v bring_v a_o new_a doctrine_n that_o be_v not_o hear_v of_o before_o contrary_a unto_o that_o that_o have_v ever_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o church_n say_v that_o it_o do_v not_o appertain_v unto_o the_o state_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n &_o that_o it_o be_v no_o religion_n but_o a_o temptation_n and_o therefore_o if_o we_o will_v be_v save_v we_o ought_v to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o faith_n that_o have_v continue_v by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n even_o from_o christ_n time_n unto_o these_o day_n s._n irenaeus_n a_o very_a famous_a writer_n 65._o lib._n 4._o contr_n haer_fw-mi cap._n 65._o in_o his_o four_o book_n against_o heresy_n the_o 65._o chapter_n who_o be_v within_o a_o few_o year_n of_o the_o apostle_n archbishop_n of_o lion_n write_v the_o very_a like_a impossible_a like_a prove_v your_o religion_n now_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o be_v in_o irenaeus_n time_n and_o then_o you_o say_v something_o &_o his_o testimony_n make_v for_o you_o otherwise_o not_o and_o this_o be_v impossible_a say_v that_o the_o true_a faith_n &_o the_o true_a knowledge_n of_o god_n be_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n &_o the_o ancient_a estate_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n
according_a to_o the_o succession_n of_o those_o bishop_n unto_o who_o only_o the_o apostle_n commit_v the_o custody_n of_o the_o church_n throughout_o the_o world_n the_o which_o say_v he_o be_v come_v to_o us._n this_o say_v irenaeus_n do_v write_v in_o his_o three_o book_n and_o second_o chapter_n that_o he_o and_o his_o fellow_n do_v withstand_v the_o valentinian_o and_o the_o marcioniste_n which_o be_v great_a heretic_n by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n word_n apostle_n a_o curse_a gloss_n for_o it_o corrupt_v the_o text_n for_o the_o tradition_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o have_v good_a warrant_n in_o the_o write_v word_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n not_o write_v but_o receive_v from_o age_n to_o age_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o so_o continue_v till_o their_o time_n he_o say_v likewise_o unto_o the_o tradition_n which_o be_v of_o the_o apostle_n and_o that_o by_o succession_n of_o pastor_n have_v be_v use_v in_o the_o church_n we_o do_v persuade_v and_o provoke_v those_o that_o speak_v against_o tradition_n he_o write_v as_o much_o more_o in_o the_o three_o chapter_n of_o the_o say_v book_n forasmuch_o say_v he_o as_o it_o be_v to_o tedious_a to_o set_v forth_o in_o one_o book_n the_o successor_n of_o all_o the_o church_n and_o to_o tell_v they_o one_o by_o one_o we_o do●●●●●_n throw_v those_o that_o for_o vain_a glory_n do_v seek_v to_o gather_v disciple_n together_o touch_v they_o contrary_a to_o that_o that_o do_v appertain_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o which_o we_o do_v show_v to_o they_o by_o the_o say_v tradition_n and_o by_o the_o faith_n that_o have_v be_v teach_v and_o be_v come_v to_o we_o by_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o great_a and_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n the_o which_o be_v found_v by_o the_o two_o glorious_a martyr_n and_o apostle_n saint_n peter_n &_o saint_n paul_n these_o be_v his_o word_n in_o his_o three_o book_n adversus_fw-la haereses_fw-la say_v haereses_fw-la the_o three_o you_o shall_v say_v the_o five_o chapter_n and_o at_o the_o begin_n of_o the_o say_v chapter_n he_o say_v thus_o all_o these_o that_o will_v understand_v the_o truth_n may_v present_o regard_v the_o tradition_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v manifest_a throughout_o the_o world_n and_o we_o can_v count_v the_o number_n of_o those_o that_o have_v be_v institute_v and_o ordain_v bishop_n in_o the_o church_n and_o their_o successor_n till_o our_o day_n which_o have_v neither_o know_v nor_o teach_v any_o thing_n like_o unto_o the_o fable_n and_o tale_n that_o these_o do_v preach_v unto_o us._n untrue_o us._n if_o you_o say_v so_o you_o say_v it_o without_o cause_n and_o untrue_o not_o without_o cause_n we_o may_v now_o a_o day_n say_v the_o like_a of_o the_o lutheran_n caluiniste_n &_o other_o sect_n of_o our_o time_n after_o this_o he_o do_v set_v forth_o all_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n do_v rome_n if_o the_o pope_n ever_o since_o have_v be_v like_o these_o you_o and_o we_o shall_v not_o have_v need_v to_o strive_v as_o we_o do_v from_o saint_n peter_n unto_o eleutherius_fw-la which_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o he_o do_v affirm_v that_o that_o number_n do_v suffice_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o marcian_n and_o valentinian_n be_v false_a &_o very_a hurtful_a because_o that_o it_o be_v unknown_a or_o at_o the_o least_o not_o receive_v or_o approve_v by_o the_o church_n be_v under_o the_o governance_n of_o any_o of_o th●se_a pope_n then_o with_o great_a reason_n ought_v prescription_n to_o take_v place_n against_o be_v against_o true_a but_o such_o you_o shall_v never_o prove_v we_o to_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n which_o have_v be_v unknowen_a this_o 1500._o year_n or_o at_o the_o least_o if_o any_o body_n seek_v to_o publish_v it_o he_o be_v condemn_v as_o a_o false_a perditious_a heretic_n the_o v._o chapter_n you_o must_v remember_v that_o vincentius_n live_v 1000_o year_n ago_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n &_o that_o therefore_o he_o speak_v of_o their_o time_n and_o of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o ancient_a faith_n that_o then_o be_v whereof_o if_o you_o understand_v he_o we_o say_v as_o he_o say_v and_o be_v more_o willing_a to_o join_v and_o hold_v communion_n with_o that_o church_n of_o christ_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o than_o you_o but_o then_o his_o say_n make_v direct_o against_o you_o for_o neither_o your_o church_n nor_o faith_n be_v in_o his_o day_n we_o grant_v you_o also_o that_o irenaeus_n do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n to_o stop_v the_o mouth_n of_o the_o heretic_n as_o you_o show_v in_o this_o chapter_n out_o of_o he_o but_o withal_o then_o you_o must_v not_o forget_v that_o he_o live_v not_o long_o after_o the_o apostle_n time_n when_o as_o yet_o they_o who_o succession_n he_o allege_v continue_v in_o the_o sincerity_n of_o the_o apostolic_a doctrine_n from_o which_o long_o ago_o your_o roman_a church_n as_o it_o be_v now_o have_v fall_v by_o antichristian_a apostasy_n for_o that_o he_o call_v the_o principal_a succession_n and_o those_o bishop_n only_o he_o teach_v be_v to_o be_v obey_v who_o together_o with_o the_o succession_n of_o their_o bishopricke_n have_v receive_v the_o gift_n of_o truth_n as_o i_o note_v unto_o you_o out_o of_o his_o four_o book_n 43_o chapter_n in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o first_o chapter_n but_o irenaeus_n no_o where_n prescribe_v that_o his_o example_n of_o urge_v heretic_n to_o see_v their_o folly_n by_o succession_n for_o a_o perpetual_a rule_n to_o follow_v neither_o therein_o do_v he_o prophecy_n that_o for_o 1000_o year_n after_o &_o further_o those_o successive_a line_n of_o bishop_n or_o any_o other_o will_v continue_v so_o in_o possession_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n as_o that_o safe_o always_o they_o may_v be_v join_v unto_o for_o he_o be_v not_o ignorant_a what_o be_v prophesy_v concern_v the_o come_n of_o antichrist_n 2_o thess_n 2._o and_o revel_v 17._o and_o that_o paul_n tell_v to_o the_o pastor_n of_o ephesus_n act._n 20._o that_o after_o his_o departure_n there_o will_v arise_v up_o even_o among_o themselves_o grievous_a wolf_n not_o spare_v the_o flock_n which_o must_v needs_o import_v that_o howsoever_o in_o his_o time_n he_o think_v sometime_o of_o succession_n of_o bishop_n that_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n that_o yet_o it_o be_v far_o from_o his_o meaning_n to_o prophecy_n that_o so_o it_o will_v be_v always_o you_o reason_v therefore_o in_o this_o point_n as_o one_o that_o to_o prove_v the_o stew_n at_o rome_n now_o to_o be_v pure_a virgin_n shall_v allege_v for_o proof_n thereof_o that_o they_o be_v so_o when_o they_o be_v young_a child_n for_o even_o like_a difference_n and_o odds_n there_o be_v betwixt_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n now_o and_o her_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n and_o that_o that_o be_v in_o the_o day_n &_o time_n that_o you_o and_o the_o author_n that_o you_o allege_v speak_v of_o for_o whereas_o unto_o these_o time_n the_o church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n stand_v and_o continue_v in_o the_o truth_n since_o not_o only_o many_o of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n themselves_o who_o you_o hold_v be_v free_a &_o further_a of_o of_o all_o other_o from_o err_v as_o i_o have_v show_v already_o most_o plain_o fall_v into_o heresy_n but_o also_o all_o your_o romish_a doctrine_n which_o we_o now_o count_v &_o call_v papistical_a be_v divise_v &_o find_v out_o since_o those_o time_n and_o be_v also_o not_o only_o beside_o but_o contrary_a to_o the_o doctrine_n then_o teach_v &_o receive_v by_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n &_o her_o pastor_n as_o ere_o i_o have_v do_v with_o you_o i_o hope_v at_o least_o in_o great_a part_n sufficient_o to_o prove_v it_o shall_v seem_v therefore_o that_o either_o you_o in_o thus_o reason_v be_v very_o childish_a yourself_o or_o else_o you_o think_v you_o have_v to_o deal_v but_o with_o babe_n and_o fool_n in_o that_o because_o irenaeus_n that_o flourish_v within_o two_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o the_o church_n be_v yet_o pure_a and_o undefiled_a in_o comparison_n of_o the_o time_n that_o follow_v can_v and_o do_v urge_v succession_n of_o person_n join_v with_o succession_n of_o truth_n therefore_o you_o may_v that_o live_v 1500._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o more_o you_o must_v first_o prove_v that_o succession_n of_o truth_n be_v unseparable_a from_o personal_a succession_n &_o that_o ever_o since_o and_o now_o also_o the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n who_o personal_a succession_n you_o brag_v of_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o truth_n as_o well_o as_o they_o do_v who_o name_n he_o recite_v whereof_o neither_o shall_v either_o you_o or_o any_o of_o you_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v as_o long_o as_o the_o world_n stand_v fie_o therefore_o for_o shame_n that_o you_o
pretend_v you_o will_v yield_v unto_o they_o in_o this_o point_n and_o so_o spare_v much_o labour_n that_o you_o bestow_v to_o get_v credit_n to_o your_o tradition_n unwriten_a which_o if_o you_o will_v once_o be_v bring_v unto_o we_o shall_v quick_o by_o the_o sole_a and_o sufficient_a authority_n of_o the_o scripture_n have_v a_o fair_a hand_n of_o you_o which_o you_o espy_v whatsoever_o otherwise_o you_o will_v seem_v to_o account_v of_o the_o father_n to_o blear_v the_o eye_n of_o the_o simple_a in_o this_o they_o shall_v keep_v their_o judgement_n to_o themselves_o for_o you_o like_v it_o not_o so_o that_o this_o and_o such_o your_o like_a deal_n with_o they_o cause_v one_o once_o to_o tell_v you_o that_o the_o father_n be_v unto_o you_o as_o counter_n in_o the_o hand_n of_o he_o that_o cast_v a_o account_n according_a to_o who_o will_n and_o pleasure_n sometime_o one_o and_o the_o selfsame_o counter_n stand_v for_o a_o ob_n that_o stand_v immediate_o before_o for_o a_o pound_n or_o more_o so_o with_o you_o when_o it_o please_v you_o a_o ancient_a father_n testimony_n be_v of_o great_a weight_n and_o when_o it_o please_v you_o again_o 20._o of_o their_o testimony_n be_v nothing_o howbeit_o i_o hope_v the_o indifferent_a reader_n by_o these_o testimony_n do_v &_o will_v perceive_v that_o you_o wonderful_o seek_v to_o abuse_v god_n people_n when_o yet_o you_o will_v persuade_v they_o at_o any_o time_n that_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v favourer_n and_o patron_n of_o your_o unwriten_a tradition_n and_o i_o trust_v this_o may_v serve_v to_o make_v it_o sufficient_o appear_v that_o in_o the_o judgement_n of_o these_o ancient_a father_n your_o andradius_fw-la may_v be_v ashamed_a to_o write_v as_o he_o have_v scripto_fw-la svo_fw-la aedito_fw-mi tempore_fw-la tridentini_n concilii_fw-la that_o the_o great_a part_n of_o catholic_a religion_n be_v leave_v unto_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n not_o write_v and_o that_o your_o lyndan_n be_v extreme_a mad_a or_o very_o drink_v when_o he_o write_v it_o be_v most_o extreme_a madness_n to_o think_v that_o the_o whole_a and_o entire_a body_n of_o evangelicall_a doctrine_n be_v to_o be_v search_v out_o of_o the_o apostolic_a letter_n write_v with_o ink_n &_o out_o of_o the_o little_a book_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n panopl_n lib._n 1._o cap._n 22._o but_o thus_o to_o make_v unwriten_a tradition_n sometime_o equal_a &_o sometime_o superior_a in_o authority_n to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n &_o that_o upon_o this_o ground_n that_o all_o truth_n be_v not_o sufficient_o teach_v therein_o you_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o encratite_n manichees_n and_o of_o the_o montanist_n valentinian_o and_o other_o as_o it_o appear_v in_o they_o that_o write_v against_o they_o and_o yet_o o_o good_a god_n what_o a_o stir_n now_o of_o late_a this_o andradius_fw-la lyndan_n &_o other_o such_o your_o great_a champion_n have_v make_v &_o what_o cost_v they_o have_v bestow_v to_o draw_v man_n from_o that_o estimation_n that_o these_o father_n have_v of_o the_o authority_n and_o sufficiency_n of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n in_o make_v large_a treatise_n and_o discourse_n to_o show_v that_o the_o authority_n thereof_o depend_v of_o the_o testimony_n and_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v not_o sufficient_a no_o not_o half_o sufficient_a for_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o church_n either_o for_o religion_n or_o conversation_n and_o that_o they_o be_v obscure_a &_o hard_a to_o be_v understand_v &_o all_o upon_o this_o occasion_n that_o will_v they_o will_v they_o they_o be_v drive_v to_o perceive_v that_o their_o opinion_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o can_v any_o long_o be_v defend_v by_o the_o scripture_n for_o all_o their_o sophistry_n &_o cunning_a and_o that_o therefore_o they_o see_v they_o must_v maintain_v the_o credit_n of_o they_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n &_o her_o unwriten_a tradition_n which_o they_o may_v say_v to_o be_v what_o they_o lift_v or_o that_o else_o they_o must_v be_v drive_v to_o throw_v we_o the_o buckler_n and_o to_o run_v out_o of_o the_o field_n but_o you_o do_v foul_o deceive_v yourselves_o if_o you_o think_v in_o this_o great_a light_n that_o man_n espy_v not_o that_o this_o be_v a_o shameful_a shift_n and_o which_o argue_v that_o your_o cause_n be_v even_o give_v up_o the_o ghost_n that_o you_o can_v hold_v out_o no_o long_o unless_o it_o be_v by_o prefer_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n the_o wife_n before_o christ_n the_o husband_n &_o by_o give_v she_o your_o commission_n to_o sit_v as_o judge_v over_o her_o husband_n word_n &_o to_o add_v there_o unto_o and_o take_v therefrom_o how_o &_o what_o seem_v good_a unto_o she_o and_o your_o fault_n herein_o be_v the_o more_o intolerable_a because_o by_o the_o church_n you_o understand_v always_o your_o popish_a synagogue_n that_o now_o be_v for_o even_o child_n may_v see_v that_o you_o be_v very_o far_o drive_v when_o there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n but_o you_o must_v thus_o open_v your_o mouth_n and_o prepare_v your_o pen_n to_o disgrace_v his_o write_v word_n which_o all_o man_n know_v to_o be_v his_o word_n indeed_o without_o question_n for_o the_o grace_v &_o countenance_v in_o this_o sort_n of_o that_o which_o though_o you_o call_v his_o word_n you_o be_v never_o able_a to_o prove_v to_o be_v so_o and_o for_o this_o who_o see_v not_o that_o we_o may_v just_o say_v of_o you_o as_o tertull_n apolog._n 5._o say_v of_o the_o heathen_a in_o his_o time_n apud_fw-la vos_fw-la de_fw-la humano_fw-la arbitratu_fw-la pensitatur_fw-la divinitas_fw-la nisi_fw-la homini_fw-la deus_fw-la placuerit_fw-la deus_fw-la non_fw-la erit_fw-la homo_fw-la iam_fw-la deo_fw-la propitius_fw-la esse_fw-la debebit_fw-la that_o be_v with_o you_o the_o godhead_n be_v esteem_v of_o as_o man_n shall_v think_v good_a unless_o god_n please_v man_n he_o shall_v not_o be_v god_n man_n now_o must_v be_v good_a to_o god_n howsoever_o you_o be_v ashamed_a thus_o gross_o with_o these_o profane_a pagan_n to_o speak_v yet_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o that_o you_o still_o say_v &_o write_v that_o the_o write_v word_n of_o god_n be_v inferior_a in_o authority_n to_o the_o church_n &_o have_v the_o canonical_a credit_n from_o thence_o &_o that_o the_o sense_n thereof_o be_v &_o must_v be_v whatsoever_o your_o bishop_n of_o rome_n for_o the_o time_n be_v do_v define_v &_o determine_v so_o to_o be_v rely_v still_o upon_o unwriten_a tradition_n &_o bear_v man_n in_o hand_n that_o they_o be_v as_o well_o the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o you_o do_v all_o man_n who_o your_o enchantment_n have_v not_o bewitch_v &_o make_v blind_a may_v see_v that_o in_o effect_v you_o be_v as_o gross_a as_o they_o of_o who_o these_o word_n be_v true_o write_v this_o once_o we_o know_v to_o be_v his_o word_n which_o we_o find_v set_v down_o in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n &_o we_o be_v sure_o this_o be_v write_v by_o the_o direction_n of_o god_n spirit_n for_o the_o information_n of_o the_o church_n and_o we_o can_v be_v ignorant_a but_o that_o this_o spirit_n of_o god_n foresee_v what_o dangerous_a heretic_n there_o will_v be_v which_o if_o they_o be_v not_o prevent_v by_o leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n full_o in_o write_v under_o the_o pretence_n of_o unwriten_a tradition_n will_v bring_v in_o damnable_a heresy_n and_o therefore_o see_v it_o be_v evident_a unto_o we_o that_o he_o in_o these_o writing_n begin_v to_o leave_v instruction_n unto_o we_o to_o settle_v we_o in_o the_o certain_a truth_n &_o we_o know_v he_o can_v go_v thorough_a with_o it_o because_o he_o be_v god_n &_o the_o fountain_n &_o author_n of_o all_o wisdom_n &_o truth_n &_o be_v sure_a that_o he_o be_v willing_a because_o he_o perfect_o love_v the_o church_n &_o by_o christ_n promise_n by_o the_o ministry_n of_o the_o apostles_n be_v to_o lead_v it_o into_o all_o truth_n we_o must_v needs_o think_v it_o flat_a blasphemy_n to_o think_v that_o the_o write_v word_n of_o god_n be_v any_o way_n unsufficient_a for_o the_o full_a direction_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o matter_n and_o therefore_o howsoever_o you_o please_v your_o sect_n in_o this_o devise_n of_o you_o in_o feight_v thus_o for_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n think_v not_o to_o the_o contrary_a but_o any_o man_n of_o mean_a judgement_n will_v descry_v both_o your_o u●●●tie_n and_o impiety_n therein_o by_o make_v this_o reason_n in_o his_o own_o mind_n unto_o himself_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n in_o the_o writer_n of_o the_o scripture_n see_v it_o good_a and_o necessary_a to_o leave_v the_o word_n of_o god_n for_o the_o full_a direction_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o matter_n write_v by_o that_o be_v do_v and_o write_v it_o be_v clear_a he_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n and_o to_o take_v it_o in_o hand_n
and_o not_o to_o perfect_v it_o be_v to_o leave_v the_o church_n without_o a_o perfect_a touchstone_n to_o try_v all_o doctrine_n by_o and_o argue_v that_o it_o be_v either_o because_o he_o can_v not_o or_o will_v not_o perfect_v it_o whereof_o the_o one_o rob_v he_o of_o his_o almighty_a power_n and_o infinite_a knowledge_n the_o other_o of_o the_o perfection_n of_o love_n and_o faithfulness_n towards_o the_o churchy_n therefore_o most_o certain_o in_o the_o write_v word_n there_o be_v leave_v a_o full_a and_o perfect_a direction_n for_o the_o church_n and_o consequent_o those_o unwriten_a tradition_n that_o some_o strive_v for_o be_v superfluous_a thus_o you_o have_v your_o answer_n to_o this_o chapter_n the_o vi_o chapter_n saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o epistle_n all_o epistle_n you_o shall_v say_v 165._o f_o r_o there_n be_v but_o 204._o epistle_n in_o all_o 365._o about_o the_o like_a matter_n do_v set_v forth_o all_o the_o pope_n by_o order_n which_o have_v be_v from_o s._n peter_n time_n until_o anastasius_n which_o be_v pope_n in_o his_o time_n and_o by_o his_o continual_a succession_n he_o do_v prove_v be_v prove_v by_o the_o same_o argument_n we_o disprove_v popery_n because_o none_o of_o they_o that_o he_o reckon_v up_o there_o be_v of_o the_o romish_a religion_n that_o now_o be_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o donatist_n be_v heretical_a because_o that_o none_o of_o those_o pope_n which_o he_o do_v recite_v nor_o no_o part_n of_o the_o church_n do_v receive_v it_o i_o pray_v you_o may_v not_o we_o say_v the_o like_a by_o the_o caluiniste_n the_o no_o not_o by_o they_o true_o who_o you_o call_v caluiniste_n caluinist_n and_o other_o heretic_n the_o say_v s._n augustine_n in_o the_o epistle_n that_o these_o that_o it_o seem_v you_o be_v a_o learned_a man_n for_o augustine_n write_v against_o a_o epistle_n so_o call_v he_o call_v not_o his_o so_o the_o epithet_n roman_n you_o add_v &_o the_o word_n all_o and_o continual_a for_o he_o speak_v but_o of_o succession_n to_o his_o time_n and_o yet_o there_o he_o say_v that_o o●●●e_a truth_n be_v to_o be_v prefer_v before_o all_o these_o he_o do_v call_v epistola_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la cap._n 4._o do_v write_v the_o reason_n that_o do_v keep_v he_o under_o the_o obedience_n of_o the_o catholic_a roman_a church_n and_o among_o other_o he_o do_v allege_v the_o common_a consent_n of_o all_o nation_n &_o the_o continual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n one_o bishop_n this_o show_v your_o great_a ignorance_n or_o negligence_n for_o of_o th●●_n argument_n augustine_n write_v two_o book_n and_o in_o every_o book_n many_o chapter_n there_o be_v but_o this_o be_v common_a with_o you_o the_o more_o to_o trouble_v your_o reader_n to_o send_v he_o to_o whole_a book_n and_o beside_o sometime_o to_o set_v down_o your_o quotation_n as_o though_o the_o author_n have_v write_v but_o one_o when_o he_o write_v mo_z of_o that_o argument_n or_o as_o though_o he_o have_v write_v more_o when_o he_o have_v write_v but_o one_o and_o in_o his_o book_n which_o he_o make_v against_o the_o adversary_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a law_n he_o do_v name_n the_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n as_o most_o certain_a to_o answer_v to_o that_o that_o we_o say_v before_o of_o s._n 1._o s._n ephes_n 1._o paul_n 4._o paul_n you_o write_v ephes_n 1._o for_o ephes_n 4._o i_o mean_v that_o he_o will_v not_o have_v we_o to_o be_v waver_v and_o doubtful_a in_o our_o doctrine_n but_o that_o we_o shall_v be_v firm_a and_o stable_a the_o which_o stableness_n be_v obtain_v by_o the_o knowledge_n and_o intelligence_n of_o the_o scripture_n according_a to_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o church_n and_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o bishop_n not_o bishop_n it_o continue_v so_o to_o augustine_n time_n that_o be_v three_o or_o four_o hundred_o year_n so_o ergo_fw-la so_fw-mi a_o thousand_o five_o hundred_o year_n and_o more_o it_o shall_v so_o continue_v the_o argument_n follow_v not_o the_o church_n say_v s._n augustine_n from_o the_o apostle_n time_n have_v continue_v through_o the_o certain_a succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n until_o our_o day_n the_o vi_o chapter_n in_o this_o 6._o chapter_n you_o cite_v three_o place_n though_o some_o of_o they_o wrong_v quote_v out_o of_o augustine_n whereby_o indeed_o it_o appear_v that_o as_o irenaeus_n do_v object_n succession_n even_o so_o do_v he_o to_o confute_v the_o heretic_n of_o his_o time_n that_o teach_v thing_n contrary_a to_o the_o scripture_n but_o as_o i_o have_v say_v unto_o you_o concern_v irenaeus_n so_o do_v i_o concern_v he_o you_o must_v remember_v that_o augustine_n live_v &_o write_v within_o 400._o year_n after_o christ_n unto_o who_o time_n the_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n who_o succession_n he_o produce_v have_v continue_v at_o least_o sound_v in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n from_o which_o you_o &_o your_o predecessor_n fall_v away_o long_o ago_o &_o therefore_o that_o which_o he_o may_v herein_o safe_o and_o to_o good_a purpose_n do_v you_o can_v do_v without_o peril_n &_o to_o a_o ill_a end_n again_o you_o must_v be_v tell_v that_o as_o irenaeus_n be_v not_o so_o neither_o be_v he_o in_o thus_o do_v a_o prophet_n to_o show_v that_o to_o the_o world_n end_n it_o will_v be_v safe_a thus_o to_o do_v and_o last_o i_o will_v have_v both_o you_o and_o your_o reader_n to_o remember_v that_o it_o be_v not_o bare_a personal_a succession_n that_o augustine_n here_o make_v such_o reckon_n of_o but_o that_o when_o it_o be_v join_v also_o with_o succession_n of_o truth_n of_o doctrine_n as_o it_o be_v in_o his_o time_n with_o they_o of_o who_o succession_n he_o speak_v and_o be_v not_o now_o with_o you_o and_o they_o of_o who_o succession_n you_o brag_v so_o much_o which_o three_o thing_n consider_v whatsoever_o thing_n further_a by_o you_o or_o any_o of_o your_o fellow_n be_v allege_v to_o this_o purpose_n out_o of_o tertullian_n cyprian_n or_o epiphanius_n which_o you_o may_v have_v as_o well_o allege_v as_o irenaeus_n or_o augustine_n be_v answer_v for_o they_o all_o of_o they_o live_v within_o 500_o year_n after_o christ_n when_o as_o yet_o the_o state_n of_o the_o church_n stand_v in_o good_a term_n in_o comparison_n that_o you_o do_v and_o they_o all_o speak_v of_o succession_n of_o person_n succeed_v also_o one_o another_o in_o the_o apostolic_a truth_n and_o they_o speak_v but_o for_o their_o own_o time_n they_o prophesy_v not_o that_o so_o it_o will_v be_v always_o and_o yet_o thus_o it_o be_v your_o fashion_n to_o beguile_v the_o simple_a that_o whatsoever_o you_o read_v 1000_o year_n ago_o speak_v in_o commendation_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o then_o be_v the_o catholic_a church_n or_o catholic_a faith_n that_o you_o will_v bear_v they_o in_o hand_n be_v speak_v of_o your_o romish_a church_n and_o religion_n now_o when_o as_o you_o compare_v with_o those_o time_n have_v no_o similitude_n with_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n then_o in_o a_o great_a number_n of_o weighty_a point_n but_o for_o the_o better_a satisfy_n of_o the_o reader_n indeed_o s._n august_n what_o account_n soever_o either_o in_o these_o place_n here_o recite_v by_o you_o or_o else_o where_o he_o seem_v to_o make_v of_o personal_a succession_n or_o of_o any_o such_o outward_a thing_n in_o the_o church_n make_v more_o account_n of_o sole_a truth_n teach_v only_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n then_o of_o all_o other_o thing_n beside_o for_o even_o in_o in_o his_o 165._o epistle_n which_o be_v the_o epistle_n as_o it_o shall_v seem_v which_o you_o mean_v though_o you_o quote_v the_o 365._o which_o be_v more_o by_o a_o hundred_o &_o one_o then_o there_o be_v in_o all_o after_o he_o say_v we_o presume_v not_o so_o much_o of_o these_o as_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o in_o the_o second_o place_n by_o you_o here_o cite_v out_o of_o he_o which_o ignorant_o you_o say_v he_o call_v epistola_fw-la fundamenti_fw-la whereas_o he_o call_v none_o of_o his_o epistle_n so_o but_o write_v against_o a_o epistle_n of_o the_o manichee_n which_o they_o so_o call_v one_o book_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o the_o four_o chapter_n whereof_o after_o he_o have_v reckon_v up_o the_o thing_n which_o do_v hold_v he_o in_o the_o bosom_n of_o the_o catholic_a church_n and_o may_v likewise_o hold_v any_o believer_n therein_o though_o truth_n as_o yet_o do_v not_o most_o manifest_o show_v herself_o he_o add_v by_o &_o by_o but_z with_o you_o speak_v to_o the_o manichee_n sola_fw-la personat_fw-la veritatis_fw-la pollicitatio_fw-la etc._n etc._n only_a promise_n of_o truth_n ring_v which_o true_o if_o it_o be_v show_v to_o be_v on_o your_o side_n so_o manifest_a that_o it_o can_v be_v call_v into_o doubt_n praeponenda_fw-la est_fw-la omnibus_fw-la illis_fw-la rebus_fw-la quibus_fw-la in_o
before_o we_o agree_v in_o unity_n of_o faith_n as_o i_o have_v already_o say_v for_o neither_o the_o naughtiness_n of_o 16._o of_o there_o be_v no_o such_o there_o mention_v this_o be_v your_o common_a hap_n in_o your_o quotation_n it_o seem_v you_o will_v have_v say_v 2._o king_n 16._o achas_n num._n 1._o nor_o of_o joram_n nor_o of_o diverse_a other_o great_a sinner_n which_o be_v enrol_v in_o the_o book_n of_o the_o generation_n of_o jesus_n christ_n be_v not_o able_a to_o withstand_v the_o fulfil_n of_o the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v to_o abraham_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o he_o will_v be_v bear_v of_o this_o line_n even_o so_o the_o ill_a life_n and_o conversation_n of_o diverse_a wicked_a pope_n that_o have_v follow_v after_o saint_n peter_n have_v never_o be_v fail_v be_v this_o be_v true_a and_o yet_o you_o never_o the_o near_o for_o though_o all_o papist_n fail_v in_o faith_n yet_o his_o church_n never_o fail_v able_a to_o move_v christ_n to_o break_v his_o promise_n that_o be_v to_o say_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o his_o church_n shall_v never_o fail_v math._n 16._o and_o that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n that_o be_v to_o say_v of_o infidelity_n which_o be_v the_o port_n of_o damnation_n shall_v never_o prevail_v against_o it_o all_o it_o i_o see_v not_o how_o that_o chapter_n or_o any_o thing_n therein_o serve_v to_o this_o purpose_n any_o whit_n at_o all_o esay_n 58._o our_o adversary_n therefore_o that_o take_v such_o great_a pain_n to_o set_v forth_o in_o golden_a legend_n the_o life_n of_o the_o wicked_a pope_n that_o have_v be_v since_o saint_n peter_n time_n think_v thereby_o to_o overthrow_v the_o succession_n of_o the_o catholic_a ecclesiastical_a faith_n shame_n faith_n your_o comparison_n be_v odious_a neither_o do_v we_o lay_v open_a their_o wicked_a life_n to_o that_o end_n you_o speak_v of_o but_o to_o show_v that_o your_o glory_n be_v your_o shame_n do_v no_o less_o offend_v god_n then_o if_o they_o shall_v go_v about_o to_o prove_v the_o promise_n of_o god_n make_v to_o the_o patriarch_n to_o be_v vain_a because_o of_o the_o evil_a life_n of_o their_o successor_n therefore_o those_o that_o do_v reproach_n unto_o we_o now_o that_o the_o pope_n of_o our_o day_n be_v not_o altogether_o so_o holy_a as_o s._n peter_n we_o do_v confess_v it_o but_o they_o can_v deny_v or_o they_o will_v confess_v unto_o we_o that_o the_o above_o name_v evil_a king_n achaz_n joram_n manasses_n amon_n jechonias_n and_o other_o do_v lead_v no_o such_o holy_a life_n as_o abraham_n isaac_n jacob_n or_o david_n &_o yet_o notwithstanding_o those_o evil_a king_n have_v be_v set_v forth_o in_o the_o generation_n of_o our_o saviour_n as_o the_o father_n of_o the_o just_a jesus_n christ_n let_v they_o judge_v then_o that_o have_v any_o wit_n whether_o this_o be_v a_o great_a folly_n or_o no_o to_o see_v how_o these_o crafty_a cogger_n of_o the_o scripture_n shall_v make_v many_o simple_a person_n refuse_v to_o be_v the_o pope_n spiritual_a child_n because_o they_o be_v sinner_n seek_v thereby_o to_o overthrow_v all_o the_o ancient_a custom_n of_o the_o church_n the_o vii_o chapter_n whither_o only_o your_o succession_n do_v suffice_v to_o overthrow_v all_o our_o religion_n or_o any_o part_n of_o it_o though_o you_o here_o confident_o say_v it_o be_v and_o suppose_v that_o to_o be_v the_o cause_n why_o we_o reject_v it_o i_o refer_v to_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o reader_n by_o that_o which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v say_v by_o you_o and_o confute_v by_o i_o concern_v the_o same_o whereby_o also_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o every_o indifferent_a reader_n may_v perceive_v that_o we_o have_v and_o do_v still_o yield_v other_o cause_n of_o our_o rejection_n of_o it_o and_o not_o this_o at_o all_o whereas_o you_o call_v our_o religion_n here_o heresy_n that_o you_o have_v learn_v of_o the_o corrupt_a orator_n tertullus_n act._n 24._o but_o as_o he_o term_v poor_a paul_n there_o a_o captain_n of_o the_o sect_n or_o heresy_n of_o the_o nazarite_n and_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o elder_n say_v it_o be_v even_o so_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o ashamed_a of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o they_o so_o term_v but_o stout_o say_v before_o felix_n to_o their_o face_n that_o according_a to_o that_o way_n which_o they_o count_v heresy_n he_o worship_v the_o god_n of_o his_o father_n believe_v all_o that_o be_v write_v in_o the_o law_n &_o the_o prophet_n so_o though_o you_o give_v we_o never_o so_o many_o nickname_n and_o term_v our_o religion_n never_o so_o oft_o new_a and_o a_o heresy_n and_o have_v your_o high_a priest_n of_o rome_n and_o your_o elder_n to_o bear_v you_o out_o in_o so_o do_v we_o never_o a_o whit_n the_o more_o mislike_n of_o our_o religion_n as_o long_o as_o we_o be_v able_a in_o truth_n to_o say_v with_o saint_n paul_n which_o our_o conscience_n witness_v comfortable_o we_o may_v that_o therein_o we_o do_v but_o believe_v that_o which_o be_v teach_v we_o in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n indeed_o not_o caluin_n only_o but_o every_o one_o of_o we_o when_o we_o have_v to_o do_v with_o you_o in_o this_o question_n of_o your_o succession_n we_o tell_v you_o your_o reason_n draw_v from_o your_o succession_n be_v of_o no_o force_n see_v the_o greek_n who_o you_o account_v heretic_n may_v use_v that_o argument_n as_o well_o as_o you_o but_o to_o prevent_v this_o our_o objection_n against_o your_o argument_n of_o succession_n you_o say_v they_o have_v not_o succession_n and_o continuance_n of_o doctrine_n the_o which_o ought_v ever_o to_o be_v join_v to_o the_o continuance_n of_o pastor_n to_o show_v the_o true_a recognizance_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n we_o be_v glad_a to_o see_v &_o hear_v that_o evidence_n &_o force_n of_o truth_n have_v wrong_a from_o you_o this_o kind_n of_o honest_a &_o true_a reply_n to_o our_o objection_n yet_o we_o thank_v you_o not_o for_o it_o at_o all_o for_o full_o glad_o if_o our_o objection_n have_v not_o drive_v you_o to_o it_o perforce_o will_v you_o have_v run_v on_o which_o bare_a succession_n of_o bishop_n &_o pastor_n without_o any_o mention_n of_o this_o well_o howsoever_o you_o have_v be_v draw_v to_o confess_v thus_o much_o thereupon_o it_o do_v most_o evident_o follow_v that_o if_o there_o be_v as_o little_a continuance_n &_o less_o too_o in_o the_o apostolic_a faith_n and_o doctrine_n in_o your_o succession_n as_o there_o be_v among_o the_o greek_n then_o by_o your_o own_o confession_n your_o succession_n be_v as_o weak_a a_o recognizance_n of_o the_o catholic_a religion_n as_o they_o and_o therefore_o the_o case_n thus_o stand_v you_o have_v need_v to_o have_v bestow_v less_o pain_n to_o prove_v your_o personal_a succession_n and_o more_o to_o have_v prove_v this_o succession_n and_o continuance_n of_o the_o true_a catholic_a doctrine_n for_o the_o other_o wtout_fw-fr this_o you_o see_v be_v nothing_o what_o a_o preposterous_a course_n be_v this_o then_o that_o you_o have_v take_v to_o take_v such_o leisure_n to_o bestow_v pain_n on_o that_o which_o when_o you_o have_v get_v be_v nothing_o &_o to_o find_v no_o leisure_n to_o bestow_v any_o pain_n on_o this_o which_o if_o you_o can_v have_v prove_v your_o adversary_n will_v have_v stand_v with_o you_o no_o long_o enter_z yet_o into_o this_o controversy_n when_o you_o will_v &_o i_o dare_v undertake_v if_o you_o will_v be_v try_v in_o this_o case_n by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n which_o as_o i_o have_v show_v you_o must_v of_o necessity_n it_o shall_v easy_o be_v prove_v that_o notwithstanding_o all_o you_o can_v say_v against_o the_o greek_n your_o popish_a religion_n consist_v of_o more_o heresy_n and_o be_v a_o great_a apostasy_n from_o the_o ancient_a catholic_a apostolic_a faith_n then_o they_o the_o great_a thing_n you_o charge_v they_o withal_o be_v their_o deny_v of_o the_o proceed_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n from_o the_o father_n &_o the_o son_n which_o indeed_o if_o they_o deny_v in_o that_o sense_n that_o be_v object_v against_o they_o by_o you_o doubtless_o therein_o they_o be_v heretic_n but_o it_o shall_v seem_v that_o they_o refuse_v only_o that_o word_n as_o not_o understand_v of_o they_o &_o add_v as_o they_o say_v without_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n to_o the_o creed_n of_o fear_n only_o least_o by_o admitting_z the_o word_n they_o shall_v thereby_o be_v enforce_v to_o confess_v that_o he_o come_v not_o of_o one_o beginning_n but_o of_o two_o beginning_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n use_v other_o word_n express_v in_o effect_n the_o same_o thing_n and_o if_o it_o be_v thus_o as_o in_o the_o last_o session_n of_o the_o florentine_a council_n it_o shall_v seem_v to_o be_v &_o else_o where_o they_o in_o that_o respect_n their_o cause_n be_v not_o so_o ill_a as_o
consequent_a thereof_o which_o be_v eat_v of_o christ_n precious_a body_n with_o the_o filthy_a mouth_n of_o unbeliever_n be_v absurd_a the_o antecedent_n thereof_o must_v also_o be_v absurd_a howbeit_o because_o you_o shall_v not_o say_v that_o we_o be_v unwilling_a to_o yield_v you_o thorough_o a_o account_n why_o we_o deny_v your_o real_a presence_n understand_v you_o yet_o further_o we_o be_v move_v so_o to_o do_v because_o your_o doctrine_n of_o transubstantiation_n the_o only_a upholder_n thereof_o and_o the_o doctrine_n itself_o as_o you_o hold_v it_o bring_v in_o without_o all_o reason_n such_o a_o interpretation_n and_o construction_n of_o the_o word_n of_o the_o instruction_n of_o this_o sacrament_n as_o take_v away_o the_o analogy_n between_o the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n whereof_o they_o be_v sign_n overthrow_v the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n in_o anihilate_v or_o otherwise_o abandon_v the_o outward_a part_n which_o scripture_n and_o all_o antiquity_n necessary_o require_v to_o continue_v to_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o sacrament_n as_o bring_v in_o many_o monstrous_a absurdity_n and_o needless_a miracle_n contrary_a both_o to_o the_o true_a faith_n of_o christ_n manhood_n and_o good_a manner_n abhor_v both_o by_o nature_n and_o express_v warrant_n of_o the_o scripture_n from_o eat_v and_o drink_v of_o man_n flesh_n and_o blood_n cover_v or_o uncover_v and_o as_o last_o infer_v a_o eat_n &_o drink_v of_o christ_n by_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o wicked_a and_o unbeliever_n as_o well_o as_o of_o believer_n which_o eat_v of_o christ_n with_o the_o bodily_a mouth_n neither_o stand_v with_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o word_n which_o teach_v no_o such_o bodily_a commition_n of_o our_o bo●ies_n with_o christ_n &_o therefore_o see_v the_o sacrament_n be_v but_o confirmation_n of_o that_o which_o be_v teach_v in_o the_o word_n can_v or_o may_v not_o be_v teach_v herein_o nor_o yet_o with_o the_o nature_n of_o the_o covenant_n &_o communion_n with_o christ_n which_o be_v spiritual_a &_o belong_v only_o to_o the_o faithful_a &_o therefore_o only_o m●st_v be_v offer_v seal_v &_o ratify_v in_o this_o sacrament_n to_o they_o and_o yet_o for_o al●●●s_n i_o will_v not_o have_v you_o to_o imagine_v that_o we_o deny_v all_o kind_n of_o real_a presence_n in_o this_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n body_n &_o blood_n for_o we_o do_v most_o constant_o teach_v with_o the_o ancient_a father_n that_o in_o this_o sacrament_n though_o by_o mean_n thereof_o there_o be_v a_o change_n in_o name_n use_v honour_n and_o estimation_n in_o the_o outward_a element_n yet_o they_o remain_v still_o to_o be_v feed_v on_o with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n and_o that_o when_o by_o occasion_n of_o that_o which_o be_v do_v by_o the_o outward_a element_n the_o communicant_a call_v thankful_o to_o remembrance_n christ_n death_n and_o believe_v that_o his_o body_n be_v as_o certain_o break_v for_o he_o ●_o his_o blood_n shed_v as_o there_o he_o see_v the_o bread_n break_v wine_n pour_v out_o and_o both_o deliver_v unto_o he_o &_o that_o thereby_o his_o full_a &_o perfect_a salvation_n be_v absolute_o wrought_v they_o by_o this_o mouth_n of_o his_o soul_n faith_n he_o as_o certain_o though_o after_o a_o spiritual_a &_o unspeakable_a manner_n feed_v upon_o christ_n very_o break_v body_n &_o bloodshed_n &_o grow_v through_o the_o work_n of_o the_o spirit_n to_o a_o communion_n therw_v t_o as_o by_o the_o mouth_n of_o his_o body_n he_o feed_v upon_o the_o outward_a element_n &_o so_o by_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n have_v they_o unite_v with_o his_o nature_n and_o marvel_n not_o that_o faith_n can_v &_o do_v make_v the_o body_n break_a and_o blood_n shed_v of_o christ_n which_o be_v now_o do_v 1500._o year_n ago_o yet_o lively_a &_o true_o present_a for_o it_o can_v make_v thing_n speak_v &_o teach_v in_o the_o word_n though_o do_v never_o so_o long_o ago_o &_o thing_n absent_a to_o be_v present_a and_o therefore_o when_o paul_n write_v to_o the_o galat_n though_o christ_n long_v before_o have_v be_v crucify_v and_o be_v ascend_v yet_o by_o the_o mean_n of_o the_o word_n &_o sacrament_n on_o the_o one_o side_n minister_v among_o they_o and_o of_o their_o faith_n on_o the_o other_o side_n he_o say_v that_o christ_n be_v even_o crucify_v among_o they_o gal._n 3._o wherein_o as_o chrysostom_n note_v upon_o that_o place_n his_o meaning_n be_v to_o show_v the_o strength_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v able_a to_o see_v thing_n though_o far_o away_o &_o that_o by_o the_o eye_n of_o faith_n christ_n death_n be_v more_o clear_o &_o perfect_o see_v than_o it_o be_v of_o many_o that_o be_v present_a at_o it_o &_o see_v all_o that_o be_v do_v you_o seem_v in_o this_o your_o doctrine_n and_o for_o the_o defence_n thereof_o to_o be_v great_a advancer_n of_o god_n omnipotency_n but_o in_o christ_n time_n i_o pray_v you_o tell_v i_o whither_o they_o that_o believe_v that_o christ_n can_v fulfil_v their_o desire_n though_o absent_a or_o they_o that_o think_v he_o must_v be_v local_o present_a or_o else_o it_o will_v not_o be_v have_v the_o great_a faith_n in_o his_o omnipotency_n i_o be_o sure_a you_o will_v say_v the_o faith_n of_o the_o former_a be_v the_o strong_a and_o that_o they_o therein_o show_v themselves_o better_a persuade_v of_o christ_n almightiness_n than_o the_o late_a for_o the_o evidence_n of_o the_o matter_n will_v enforce_v you_o to_o confess_v thus_o much_o then_o to_o apply_v this_o to_o this_o present_a matter_n the_o thing_n that_o both_o you_o and_o we_o desire_v be_v true_o to_o be_v feed_v with_o the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o christ_n to_o eternal_a life_n whither_o then_o do_v we_o or_o you_o indeed_o believe_v his_o omnipotency_n better_o we_o that_o say_v and_o believe_v that_o he_o can_v and_o do_v feed_v we_o herewith_o and_o unite_v we_o and_o himself_o together_o in_o the_o use_n of_o this_o sacrament_n he_o tarry_v still_o in_o heaven_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n or_o you_o that_o imagine_v that_o he_o can_v do_v it_o unless_o he_o creep_v into_o your_o mouth_n under_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n nay_o whatsoever_o you_o talk_v of_o his_o omnipotency_n this_o argue_v that_o your_o faith_n be_v too_o too_o weak_a therein_o in_o that_o you_o must_v have_v such_o a_o real_a presence_n of_o he_o as_o you_o imagine_v or_o else_o you_o think_v it_o will_v not_o serve_v your_o turn_n you_o will_v grant_v that_o distance_n of_o place_n betwixt_o head_n and_o foot_n betwixt_o man_n and_o wife_n father_n and_o son_n break_v not_o nor_o hinder_v the_o union_n that_o nature_n have_v make_v between_o they_o what_o weakness_n of_o faith_n than_o be_v it_o to_o think_v that_o christ_n our_o head_n our_o husband_n our_o father_n must_v be_v local_o conjoin_v with_o we_o or_o else_o the_o union_n betwixt_o he_o and_o we_o can_v be_v perfect_v assure_v yourselves_o if_o be_v at_o this_o table_n you_o will_v seek_v he_o by_o faith_n where_o he_o be_v in_o heaven_n and_o not_o as_o you_o do_v in_o the_o form_n of_o bread_n and_o wine_n whereunto_o only_o your_o own_o fancy_n have_v tie_v he_o by_o your_o faith_n you_o shall_v so_o reach_v and_o apprehend_v he_o and_o he_o by_o his_o spirit_n will_v so_o embrace_v you_o that_o there_o be_v never_o head_n more_o sure_o by_o vienes_n sinew_n artery_n and_o other_o help_n of_o nature_n tie_v unto_o the_o inferior_a part_n nor_o husband_n to_o wife_n nor_o father_n to_o son_n more_o fast_o and_o sure_o link_v and_o knit_v by_o the_o bond_n of_o natural_a union_n than_o he_o will_v unite_v himself_o unto_o you_o for_o the_o defence_n of_o your_o real_a presence_n and_o for_o the_o avoid_v of_o many_o absurdity_n concern_v christ_n manhood_n that_o thereby_o you_o be_v fall_v into_o you_o talk_v much_o of_o the_o state_n of_o christ_n glorify_a body_n but_o alas_o do_v you_o not_o see_v that_o whatsoever_o you_o talk_v thereof_o be_v quite_o beside_o the_o purpose_n for_o this_o be_v not_o a_o sacrament_n of_o his_o glorify_a body_n but_o of_o his_o crucify_a body_n not_o of_o the_o conjunction_n of_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o of_o the_o separation_n of_o the_o one_o from_o the_o other_o and_o therefore_o christ_n in_o the_o institution_n call_v not_o bread_n and_o wine_n simple_o his_o body_n and_o blood_n but_o his_o body_n break_v and_o blood_n shed_v and_o give_v the_o bread_n a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o one_o and_o the_o wine_n a_o part_n from_o the_o bread_n a_o sacrament_n of_o the_o other_o whereupon_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o here_o we_o have_v to_o do_v with_o his_o passable_a body_n with_o his_o body_n break_v &_o his_o blood_n shed_v upon_o the_o cross_n and_o not_o with_o the_o state_n of_o his_o glorify_a and_o impassable_a body_n and_o therefore_o unless_o
your_o doctrine_n herein_o than_o he_o do_v and_o you_o know_v that_o he_o live_v 400._o year_n after_o christ_n and_o more_o in_o like_o sort_n your_o doctrine_n of_o iustyfication_n in_o part_n by_o man_n own_o merit_n and_o satisfaction_n howsoever_o of_o ancient_a time_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharise_n trouble_v the_o apostolic_a church_n with_o the_o like_a doctrine_n yet_o be_v it_o a_o doctrine_n abhor_v of_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n as_o blasphemous_a against_o the_o omnisufficient_a merit_n &_o satisfaction_n of_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n &_o saviour_n &_o we_o of_o justification_n free_o and_o full_o sole_o and_o whole_o by_o faith_n only_o in_o christ_n allow_v and_o receive_v as_o sound_a truth_n and_o doctrine_n in_o that_o point_n not_o only_o in_o the_o apostle_n time_n as_o it_o appear_v ro._n 3_o gal._n 2._o &_o 5._o but_o also_o for_o many_o 100_o year_n after_o even_o unto_o very_o late_a day_n for_o proof_n whereof_o let_v any_o man_n read_v origen_n upon_o the_o 3._o &_o 6._o of_o the_o roman_n ambrose_n upon_o the_o 3_o of_o the_o roman_n also_o hierom_n in_o his_o book_n against_o the_o pelagian_n upon_o the_o 4_o to_o the_o roman_n &_o upon_o the_o first_o and_o 2._o to_o the_o gala._n aug._n de_fw-la fide_fw-la &_o operibus_fw-la ca._n 22._o upon_o the_o 88_o psa_n and_o in_o his_o 22_o chap._n of_o his_o manuel_n and_o hilary_n in_o his_o 8_o canon_n upon_o matthew_n see_v also_o basils_n 51._o hom_n de_fw-fr humilitate_fw-la paulinus_n 58._o epistle_n to_o saint_n august_n among_o augustine_n epistle_n chrysostome_n upon_o the_o three_o to_o the_o roman_n theodoret_n upon_o the_o same_o chapter_n gregory_n nazianzen_v twenty_o two_o oration_n and_o ruffinus_n his_o exposition_n of_o the_o creed_n &_o you_o shall_v not_o only_o find_v all_o these_o father_n in_o all_o these_o place_n as_o flat_o to_o teach_v free_a &_o full_a justification_n &_o salvation_n to_o come_v by_o faith_n in_o christ_n alone_o wtout_o our_o work_n at_o all_o concur_v as_o any_o help_a cause_n thereunto_o as_o any_o of_o we_o now_o do_v but_o also_o further_o i_o can_v &_o do_v assure_v you_o that_o who_o so_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o take_v the_o pain_n to_o read_v bernard_n 23_o 61_o and_o 62_o sermon_n of_o the_o canticle_n &_o his_o sermon_n the_o 15_o of_o the_o psalm_n qui_fw-la habitat_fw-la and_o his_o seventy_o seven_o epistle_n he_o shall_v find_v that_o he_o though_o he_o be_v above_o 1100_o year_n after_o christ_n be_v of_o the_o same_o mind_n for_o in_o these_o place_n he_o plain_o confess_v that_o he_o for_o his_o salvation_n rest_v only_o upon_o the_o merit_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o upon_o his_o own_o at_o all_o count_v man_n merit_n to_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o trust_v only_o in_o christ_n and_o in_o god_n mercy_n withal_o plain_o testifi_v that_o he_o hope_v to_o have_v he_o solâ_fw-la fide_fw-la by_o faith_n only_o in_o christ_n jesus_n yea_o your_o own_o thomas_n aquine_n confess_v with_o we_o that_o we_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n instrumental_o and_o that_o no_o virtue_n inherent_a in_o we_o can_v be_v of_o the_o form_n or_o essence_n of_o our_o justification_n rom._n 4_o ephesian_n 2_o and_o in_o sundry_a other_o place_n of_o his_o commentary_n upon_o paul_n epistle_n and_o sadolet_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n acknowledge_v doubtless_o force_v thereunto_o by_o the_o power_n of_o this_o truth_n that_o abraham_n attulit_fw-la tantùm_fw-la fidem_fw-la non_fw-la sva_fw-la opera_fw-la that_o abraham_n bring_v only_a faith_n &_o not_o his_o own_o work_n &_o again_o he_o say_v quantum_fw-la cuique_fw-la affert_fw-la de_fw-la suâ_fw-la iustitiâ_fw-la tantum_fw-la detrahit_fw-la de_fw-la divinâ_fw-la beneficentiâ_fw-la that_o be_v how_o much_o in_o this_o respect_n a_o man_n bring_v of_o his_o own_o righteousness_n so_o much_o he_o pull_v from_o god_n bountifulness_n how_o far_o likewise_o the_o strength_n of_o this_o truth_n conquer_v your_o great_a champion_n piggius_n with_o grief_n ruard_n tapper_n and_o other_o of_o your_o side_n have_v note_v &_o write_v against_o he_o for_o it_o for_o in_o the_o controversy_n of_o justification_n fol._n 61._o he_o in_o plain_n term_n with_o we_o confess_v si_fw-la formaliter_fw-la &_o propriè_fw-la loquamur_fw-la nec_fw-la fide_fw-la nec_fw-la charitate_fw-la nostrâ_fw-la iustificamur'se_v unâ_fw-la dei_fw-la in_o christo_fw-la iustitiâ_fw-la unâ_fw-la christi_fw-la nobis_fw-la communicatâ_fw-la iustitia_fw-la that_o be_v if_o we_o speak_v formal_o &_o proper_o we_o be_v justify_v neither_o by_o faith_n nor_o by_o our_o charity_n but_o by_o the_o only_a righteousness_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n by_o the_o only_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n communicate_v unto_o us._n and_o have_v with_o we_o before_o in_o the_o controversy_n prove_v &_o confess_v fol._n 46._o y_o all_o man_n even_o the_o most_o righteous_a if_o they_o shall_v be_v judge_v of_o god_n or_o esteem_v according_a to_o their_o own_o righteousness_n by_o merit_n and_o desert_n they_o be_v to_o be_v accurse_v and_o condemn_v not_o only_o for_o the_o imperfection_n of_o our_o best_a righteousness_n but_o also_o for_o plain_a unrighteousness_n to_o be_v find_v in_o the_o best_o he_o proceed_v &_o conclude_v fol._n 47._o that_o our_o righteousness_n &_o hope_n of_o salvation_n with_o god_n consist_v in_o the_o free_a forgiveness_n of_o our_o sin_n in_o christ_n &_o in_o that_o the_o perfect_a righteousness_n of_o christ_n be_v impute_v unto_o we_o have_v communion_n with_o he_o and_o to_o make_v his_o meaning_n more_o plain_a that_o he_o mean_v not_o by_o the_o righteousness_n of_o god_n or_o christ_n any_o inherent_a righteousness_n of_o we_o wrought_v in_o we_o that_o believe_v by_o the_o spirit_n of_o christ_n as_o our_o late_a jesuite_n do_v but_o the_o righteousness_n that_o be_v &_o be_v inherent_a in_o christ_n he_o say_v that_o the_o righteousness_n of_o christ_n whereof_o he_o will_v be_v understand_v in_o this_o case_n to_o speak_v be_v his_o obedience_n whereby_o he_o fulfil_v his_o father_n will_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o he_o expound_v or_o declare_v the_o nature_n of_o the_o faith_n whereof_o the_o apostle_n speak_v rom._n 3._o say_v we_o be_v justify_v free_o by_o his_o grace_n by_o the_o redemption_n that_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n who_o he_o have_v appoint_v to_o be_v our_o atonement_n maker_n by_o his_o blood_n to_o be_v fiducian_n &_o confidentian_n in_o sanguine_a eius_fw-la fol._n 48._o to_o be_v a_o trust_n and_o confidence_n in_o his_o blood_n thereby_o alone_o to_o be_v save_v so_o still_o advouch_v fol._n 49._o his_o only_a righteousness_n impute_v unto_o we_o to_o be_v the_o whereby_o we_o shall_v stand_v &_o be_v account_v righteous_a before_o god_n and_o he_o therefore_o to_o be_v unicum_fw-la &_o solidum_fw-la the_o alone_a &_o sound_a foundation_n of_o our_o salvation_n to_o conclude_v therefore_o this_o point_n i_o say_v with_o junilius_n aphricanus_fw-la who_o live_v anno._n 440._o lib._n 3._o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d si_fw-la quis_fw-la in_o christum_n crediderit_fw-la remissis_fw-la peccatis_fw-la potest_fw-la per_fw-la solam_fw-la fidem_fw-la seruari_fw-la that_o be_v if_o any_o believe_v in_o christ_n his_o sin_n be_v forgive_v he_o he_o may_v by_o faith_n alone_o be_v save_v and_o with_o augustine_n upon_o the_o 31._o psalm_n si_fw-la vis_fw-la esse_fw-la alienus_fw-la a_o gratia_fw-la iacta_fw-la merita_fw-la tua_fw-la if_o thou_o will_v be_v void_a of_o grace_n they_o boast_v of_o thy_o merit_n your_o doctrine_n of_o auricular_a confession_n of_o pray_v to_o saint_n &_o for_o the_o dead_a i_o have_v at_o large_a in_o my_o answer_n to_o your_o thirty_o seven_o chapter_n show_v to_o be_v but_o new_a doctrine_n and_o of_o far_o late_a stamp_n than_o you_o pretend_v and_o in_o like_a manner_n elsewhere_o i_o have_v show_v diverse_a other_o point_n of_o your_o religion_n to_o be_v in_o this_o answer_n of_o i_o and_o i_o think_v you_o be_v not_o ignorant_a that_o that_o worthy_a bishop_n bishop_n jewel_n here_o in_o england_n bishop_n of_o salisbury_n have_v most_o confident_o protest_v that_o for_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n you_o have_v no_o sound_a ground_n for_o 25._o article_n whereof_o the_o most_o of_o they_o be_v about_o your_o mass_n whereof_o you_o glory_v most_o which_o protestation_n or_o challenge_n of_o he_o he_o have_v hitherto_o defend_v sufficient_o against_o all_o your_o objection_n to_o the_o contrary_n and_o therefore_o whatsoever_o you_o brag_v to_o the_o contrary_a so_o much_o of_o your_o religion_n as_o we_o count_v it_o popish_a for_o be_v and_o will_v prove_v when_o you_o have_v do_v what_o you_o can_v but_o as_o the_o tare_n math._n 13_o that_o be_v by_o satan_n subtle_o and_o secret_o sow_v in_o the_o lord_n field_n long_o after_o the_o good_a seed_n be_v sow_v and_o yet_o we_o labour_v only_o according_a to_o our_o calling_n and_o that_o knowledge_n that_o god_n have_v give_v we_o
our_o religion_n to_o be_v the_o true_a &_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n and_o ever_o since_o continue_v in_o christ_n true_a church_n namely_o first_o for_o that_o by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n we_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v the_o same_o that_o they_o preach_v see_v it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o their_o preach_n and_o write_v agree_v and_o second_o because_o our_o religion_n in_o all_o point_n agree_v with_o the_o ancient_a ground_n of_o the_o catechism_n the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o article_n of_o the_o faith_n the_o lord_n prayer_n etc._n etc._n and_o for_o these_o cause_n indeed_o we_o most_o confident_o say_v and_o advouch_v that_o you_o do_v we_o extreme_a wrong_n the_o truth_n &_o soundness_n of_o these_o two_o reason_n notwithstanding_o either_o to_o call_v our_o church_n or_o religion_n new_a or_o thus_o to_o call_v for_o miracle_n to_o confirm_v it_o now_o as_o though_o it_o have_v never_o be_v confirm_v thereby_o before_o but_o in_o all_o this_o with_o you_o we_o say_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n yet_o with_o the_o indifferent_a reader_n i_o hope_v it_o be_v to_o good_a and_o great_a purpose_n see_v hereby_o we_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n be_v not_o new_a and_o but_o of_o 40._o year_n continuance_n as_o here_o most_o untrue_o you_o charge_v it_o but_o old_a &_o ancient_a because_o it_o agree_v in_o every_o point_n with_o the_o principle_n of_o the_o ancient_a christian_a catechism_n all_o you_o say_v to_o confute_v this_o argument_n of_o we_o be_v that_o we_o have_v learn_v our_o catechism_n of_o you_o &_o otherwise_o we_o shall_v not_o or_o can_v not_o have_v come_v by_o it_o whereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o if_o we_o have_v have_v no_o better_a catechiser_n than_o you_o we_o have_v yet_o be_v but_o bad_o catechise_v and_o this_o further_a you_o may_v be_v sure_a of_o your_o credit_n be_v by_o your_o long_a and_o manifold_a lewd_a deal_n so_o crack_a with_o we_o if_o we_o have_v not_o find_v these_o part_n of_o the_o catechism_n either_o flat_o express_v or_o sufficient_o confirm_v and_o ground_v in_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n upon_o your_o credit_n we_o have_v not_o receive_v they_o beside_o as_o i_o have_v plentiful_o show_v in_o the_o 4._o chapter_n we_o have_v have_v in_o all_o age_n from_o christ_n down_o to_o our_o own_o very_o many_o of_o our_o own_o religion_n that_o have_v continue_v and_o from_o hand_n to_o hand_n deliver_v unto_o we_o these_o part_n of_o the_o catechism_n more_o sound_o and_o faithful_o than_o you_o have_v do_v so_o that_o if_o you_o have_v never_o be_v we_o shall_v far_o better_v and_o soon_o have_v learn_v these_o thing_n but_o in_o the_o most_o wise_a providence_n of_o god_n these_o be_v in_o some_o sort_n also_o continue_v among_o you_o that_o so_o you_o may_v be_v the_o more_o without_o excuse_n in_o that_o notwithstanding_o the_o light_n that_o may_v have_v shine_v unto_o you_o thereby_o you_o yet_o choose_v rather_o to_o walk_v in_o gross_a and_o palpable_a darkness_n then_o in_o the_o light_n thereof_o and_o therefore_o sathan_n the_o prince_n of_o darkness_n in_o your_o synagogue_n through_o the_o help_n of_o his_o vicar_n general_a your_o pope_n and_o his_o chaplain_n never_o cease_v until_o by_o one_o blind_a and_o hellish_a persuasion_n or_o other_o whatsoever_o paul_n have_v teach_v to_o the_o contrary_a 1_o corint_n 14._o he_o bring_v to_o pass_v not_o only_o that_o all_o your_o lyturgie_n and_o service_n shall_v be_v in_o latin_a and_o rather_o lie_v legend_n permit_v to_o be_v read_v in_o the_o church_n public_o in_o the_o mother_n tongue_n than_o the_o scripture_n of_o god_n but_o also_o that_o these_o portion_n of_o the_o catechism_n shall_v either_o not_o be_v learn_v at_o all_o or_o else_o only_o in_o the_o latin_a and_o unknowen_a tongue_n which_o he_o know_v be_v all_o one_o in_o effect_n otherwise_o then_o thus_o by_o your_o good_a will_n how_o little_a soever_o we_o have_v understand_v the_o latin_a tongue_n we_o shall_v not_o nor_o can_v not_o be_v suffer_v to_o learn_v they_o and_o therefore_o this_o learning_n be_v altogether_o wtout_fw-fr edification_n neither_o be_v there_o any_o cause_n why_o you_o shall_v brag_v that_o we_o have_v learn_v our_o catechism_n of_o you_o nor_o why_o we_o shall_v account_v ourselves_o any_o thing_n in_o your_o debt_n for_o the_o same_o further_o to_o make_v it_o yet_o more_o appear_v how_o little_a beholden_a we_o be_v to_o you_o for_o teach_v we_o the_o catechism_n let_v we_o but_o a_o little_a consider_v even_o your_o most_o diligent_a catechise_n of_o man_n in_o these_o three_o part_n thereof_o here_o name_v by_o you_o the_o ten_o commandment_n the_o creed_n and_o the_o lord_n prayer_n first_o concern_v the_o ten_o commandment_n in_o steed_n of_o one_o god_n which_o there_o we_o be_v command_v to_o have_v you_o in_o teach_v we_o to_o worship_v saint_n angel_n your_o breaden_a god_n and_o your_o pope_n as_o you_o do_v have_v teach_v we_o to_o worship_v so_o many_o more_o god_n than_o one_o and_o second_o that_o your_o image_n and_o idol_n may_v stand_v to_o the_o enritch_n of_o your_o clergy_n with_o the_o idolatrous_a offering_n unto_o they_o it_o be_v and_o be_v a_o common_a trick_n with_o you_o in_o set_v down_o the_o commandment_n in_o your_o catechism_n and_o elsewhere_o to_o leave_v the_o second_o commandment_n quite_o out_o which_o be_v direct_o both_o against_o the_o make_n and_o worship_v of_o they_o and_o yet_o lest_o you_o shall_v of_o every_o one_o be_v spy_v in_o find_v they_o but_o 9_o you_o divide_v the_o ten_o into_o two_o and_o as_o for_o the_o other_o 2._o commandment_n of_o the_o first_o table_n by_o your_o ordinary_a &_o most_o common_a practice_n the_o people_n be_v teach_v whatsoever_o be_v there_o to_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o very_o well_o become_v they_o of_o your_o school_n usual_o to_o swear_v by_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n that_o be_v no_o god_n and_o to_o season_v all_o their_o common_a talk_n with_o oath_n of_o all_o sort_n and_o to_o turn_v the_o day_n which_o shall_v be_v keep_v holy_a to_o the_o lord_n to_o a_o day_n of_o the_o great_a vanity_n and_o impiety_n of_o all_o the_o day_n of_o the_o week_n and_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o second_o table_n never_o do_v the_o jew_n more_o make_v the_o 5._o commandment_n of_o none_o effect_n for_o love_n of_o their_o corban_n than_o you_o have_v do_v to_o maintain_v your_o infinite_a order_n of_o monk_n friar_n &_o nun_n in_o all_o contempt_n and_o neglect_n of_o duty_n to_o their_o parent_n if_o once_o you_o can_v entice_v they_o into_o those_o cloister_n how_o precious_a soever_o blood_n be_v yet_o so_o small_a a_o matter_n have_v it_o be_v with_o you_o that_o your_o synagogue_n be_v drink_v with_o the_o blood_n of_o god_n saint_n and_o every_o varlet_n be_v not_o only_o easy_o dispense_v withal_o with_o you_o but_o also_o often_o much_o commend_v if_o he_o can_v though_o never_o so_o traitorous_o imbrue_v his_o hand_n for_o the_o furtherance_n of_o your_o kingdom_n in_o the_o blood_n of_o subject_n or_o prince_n brother_n or_o of_o who_o soever_o else_o and_o as_o for_o adultery_n or_o fornication_n yea_o for_o sin_n against_o nature_n not_o to_o be_v name_v your_o great_a catechiser_n never_o have_v seem_v to_o make_v reckon_v of_o in_o that_o notwithstanding_o they_o know_v that_o these_o have_v follow_v in_o such_o infinite_a measure_n upon_o their_o enforce_a single_a life_n in_o every_o corner_n that_o the_o stench_n thereof_o have_v long_o ago_o reach_v up_o unto_o heaven_n to_o pull_v down_o god_n fierce_a vengeance_n against_o you_o yet_o rather_o than_o they_o will_v let_v go_v this_o trick_n of_o hypocrisy_n they_o be_v content_v that_o this_o ●ench_n increase_v still_o your_o infinite_a and_o open_a sacrilege_n in_o building_n &_o sound_v your_o cloister_n and_o prelacy_n in_o sp●●●ing_v the_o several_a parish_n of_o their_o ordinary_a maintenance_n for_o their_o minister_n &_o other_o your_o innumerable_a &_o unsatiable_a pilling_n &_o poling_n of_o god_n church_n your_o decree_n and_o practice_v in_o not_o keep_v any_o faith_n with_o those_o who_o you_o count_v heretic_n and_o your_o ordinary_a doctrine_n that_o bare_a concupiscence_n ●s_v no_o sin_n show_v what_o catechiser_n you_o be_v for_o the_o rest_n and_o whereas_o in_o the_o creed_n we_o be_v teach_v indeed_o to_o believe_v only_o in_o the_o trinity_n in_o that_o you_o usual_o teach_v we_o to_o trust_v yea_o in_o the_o matter_n of_o salvation_n to_o a_o number_n of_o thing_n beside_o and_o to_o pray_v unto_o saint_n and_o angel_n it_o be_v plain_o teach_v we_o in_o the_o word_n that_o beside_o god_n there_o be_v not_o saviour_n esa_n 43._o and_o that_o christ_n name_n be_v the_o only_a name_n of_o
gentile_n &_o namely_o to_o augustus_n cesar_n which_o profess_v though_o they_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v of_o sufficient_a force_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o gentile_n have_v thereby_o some_o knowledge_n of_o the_o come_n manner_n of_o come_v &_o office_n of_o such_o a_o messiah_n yet_o they_o prove_v not_o but_o that_o it_o be_v notwithstanding_o a_o thing_n new_a and_o not_o understand_v to_o most_o of_o they_o neither_o do_v they_o at_o all_o prove_v but_o that_o still_o the_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o particular_a person_n of_o that_o messiah_n namely_o that_o jesus_n the_o son_n of_o the_o virgin_n mary_n who_o the_o jew_n crucify_v be_v he_o &_o no_o other_o be_v a_o new_a doctrine_n both_o to_o jew_n and_o gentile_a and_o therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n it_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o apostle_n for_o all_o these_o thing_n to_o confirm_v that_o by_o miracle_n whereas_o now_o among_o we_o that_o bear_v any_o way_n the_o name_n of_o christian_n that_o doctrine_n be_v not_o new_a neither_o any_o thing_n else_o that_o we_o preach_v but_o to_o those_o to_o who_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n be_v new_a and_o therefore_o as_o yet_o there_o remain_v cause_n sufficient_a why_o the_o apostle_n shall_v work_v miracle_n and_o not_o we_o this_o also_o i_o can_v but_o tell_v you_o of_o that_o howsoever_o the_o sybilles_n be_v report_v to_o have_v prophesy_v of_o christ_n your_o comparison_n be_v very_o odious_a when_o you_o say_v they_o do_v it_o as_o full_o and_o as_o plain_o as_o any_o of_o the_o prophet_n and_o that_o you_o wrong_v augustine_n too_o too_o much_o in_o make_v your_o reader_n believe_v that_o he_o either_o in_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o you_o or_o any_o where_o else_o join_v with_o you_o in_o that_o malaperte_a comparison_n but_o these_o comparison_n of_o you_o argue_v the_o profaneness_n of_o the_o spirit_n that_o direct_v your_o pen_n the_o xx._n chapter_n thus_o you_o see_v that_o jesus_n christ_n be_v anounce_v among_o the_o gentile_n before_o the_o come_n of_o the_o apostle_n who_o notwithstanding_o this_o do_v not_o let_v to_o set_v forth_o the_o doctrine_n that_o they_o be_v send_v to_o preach_v with_o many_o notable_a miracle_n although_o they_o do_v not_o teach_v but_o that_o doctrine_n that_o be_v very_o ancient_a and_o although_o that_o their_o doctrine_n be_v new_a and_o unknowen_a to_o the_o gentile_n yet_o you_o can_v allege_v that_o it_o be_v so_o they_o so_o yes_o it_o be_v evident_a that_o the_o true_a doctrine_n both_o of_o his_o person_n and_o office_n be_v new_a and_o strange_a unto_o they_o unto_o the_o jew_n for_o they_o be_v study_v and_o learn_v in_o moses_n law_n they_o hear_v nothing_o of_o the_o apostle_n but_o have_v be_v prophesy_v by_o the_o prophet_n do_v not_o saint_n paul_n say_v at_o the_o begin_n of_o his_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n that_o he_o be_v separate_v to_o preach_v the_o gospel_n the_o which_o god_n promise_v by_o the_o holy_a scripture_n 3._o scripture_n act._n 3._o saint_n peter_n talk_v with_o the_o jew_n do_v give_v they_o plain_o to_o understande_v that_o his_o be_v no_o new_a doctrine_n because_o that_o he_o do_v preach_v jesus_n christ_n of_o who_o moses_n have_v prophesy_v long_o before_o say_v thus_o 16._o thus_o b_o deut._n 16._o god_n shall_v raise_v a_o prophet_n among_o your_o brethren_n say_v brethren_n deut._n 18_o you_o will_v say_v you_o shall_v obey_v he_o as_o you_o do_v i_o and_o he_o that_o do_v refuse_v it_o shall_v be_v put_v to_o death_n saint_n peter_n say_v afterward_o all_o the_o prophet_n that_o have_v be_v from_o samuel_n unto_o this_o time_n do_v announce_v unto_o you_o these_o day_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o doctrine_n that_o we_o do_v preach_v that_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v preach_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o be_v to_o wit_n the_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n by_o the_o death_n and_o passion_n of_o christ_n it_o be_v no_o new_a thing_n for_o as_o 10._o as_o act._n 10._o saint_n peter_n say_v unto_o cornelius_n all_z the_o prophet_n have_v witness_v that_o those_o that_o believe_v in_o he_o shall_v obtain_v remission_n of_o their_o sin_n for_o it_o have_v be_v so_o prophesy_v by_o esay_n say_v esay_n 53_o you_o shall_v have_v say_v cap._n 55._o unto_o the_o people_n above_o eight_o hundred_o year_n say_v that_o he_o have_v lay_v upon_o his_o son_n all_o our_o iniquity_n as_o it_o do_v appear_v in_o his_o book_n in_o the_o which_o he_o do_v show_v himself_o more_o an_o evangelist_n than_o a_o prophet_n for_o there_o he_o do_v write_v the_o torment_n of_o our_o saviour_n even_o as_o if_o he_o have_v be_v present_a at_o his_o passion_n david_n likewise_o do_v talk_n of_o the_o like_a where_o he_o do_v mention_v the_o extreme_a affliction_n of_o our_o redeemer_n and_o of_o the_o gall_n and_o isope_n and_o the_o vinager_n daniel_n do_v not_o only_o descry_v the_o death_n of_o our_o saviour_n but_o therewithal_o the_o very_a time_n that_o he_o shall_v come_v and_o to_o be_v brief_a all_o the_o prophet_n have_v announce_v unto_o the_o jew_n that_o that_o the_o apostle_n do_v preach_v unto_o they_o now_o if_o we_o desire_v to_o know_v why_o this_o old_a doctrine_n preach_v aswell_o to_o the_o gentile_n as_o to_o the_o jew_n by_o the_o apostle_n be_v confirm_v with_o many_o miracle_n which_o they_o do_v in_o the_o name_n of_o god_n who_o send_v they_o the_o cause_n be_v this_o the_o devil_n have_v so_o obscure_v and_o hide_v the_o truth_n over_o all_o nation_n that_o superstitious_a idolatry_n have_v take_v place_n in_o steed_n of_o the_o true_a service_n of_o god_n so_o that_o the_o poor_a painim_n do_v not_o put_v their_o trust_n in_o one_o god_n but_o in_o a_o multitude_n of_o go_n and_o in_o like_a manner_n the_o true_a religion_n give_v by_o god_n to_o the_o israelite_n have_v be_v trouble_v and_o almost_o clean_o abolish_v by_o the_o tradition_n of_o the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n in_o the_o which_o they_o do_v trust_v for_o the_o justification_n and_o remission_n of_o their_o sin_n cause_n sin_n and_o in_o your_o own_o conscience_n you_o can_v but_o see_v we_o have_v just_a cause_n the_o like_a do_v you_o report_v of_o we_o and_o of_o your_o great_a courtesy_n you_o be_v content_a to_o match_v we_o with_o the_o superstitious_a jew_n and_o idolatrous_a paynim_n place_v your_o self_n in_o the_o degree_n of_o the_o pure_a gospeler_n and_o the_o true_a child_n of_o god_n take_v upon_o you_o the_o succession_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o call_v your_o congregation_n the_o true_a catholic_a and_o apostolical_a church_n this_o sound_v notable_o well_o but_o see_v that_o your_o cause_n be_v absolute_o to_o reform_v the_o church_n as_o they_o do_v preach_v the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o god_n as_o they_o do_v and_o deal_v with_o superstitious_a idolater_n that_o cleave_v more_o to_o the_o tradition_n of_o man_n they_o unto_o the_o pure_a word_n of_o god_n as_o the_o jew_n see_v then_o that_o our_o case_n be_v report_v unto_o the_o similitude_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o you_o to_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n how_o come_v it_o to_o pass_v that_o you_o do_v not_o as_o they_o do_v see_v that_o you_o be_v send_v from_o one_o master_n why_o end_n why_o because_o our_o doctrine_n be_v the_o very_a same_o that_o they_o be_v their_o miracle_n serve_v sufficient_o to_o confirm_v it_o to_o take_v away_o all_o excuse_n from_o they_o that_o will_v not_o believe_v it_o to_o the_o world_n end_n do_v you_o not_o make_v your_o commission_n appear_v by_o sign_n and_o miracle_n see_v that_o god_n have_v ever_o do_v the_o like_a heretofore_o when_o he_o have_v send_v the_o like_a commission_n to_o you_o the_o xx._n chapter_n i_o have_v show_v you_o my_o reason_n in_o the_o former_a chapter_n why_o you_o must_v stay_v for_o all_o your_o premise_n from_o the_o conclusion_n that_o you_o begin_v withal_o in_o this_o for_o howsoever_o some_o few_o of_o they_o they_o hear_v in_o some_o sort_n that_o such_o a_o messiah_n either_o shall_v come_v or_o be_v come_v yet_o the_o particular_a person_n who_o that_o same_o be_v be_v first_o preach_v by_o the_o angel_n gabriel_n &_o second_o by_o zacharie_n and_o elizabeth_n his_o wife_n luke_n 1._o before_o he_o be_v bear_v then_o by_o the_o angel_n to_o the_o shepherd_n the_o day_n of_o his_o birth_n after_o by_o simeon_n and_o anna_n john_n baptist_n the_o apostle_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o rest_n as_o it_o follow_v set_v down_o in_o the_o story_n luke_n 2._o etc._n etc._n but_o you_o say_v yet_o further_o that_o though_o their_o doctrine_n concern_v jesus_n christ_n the_o messiah_n be_v unknowen_a to_o the_o gentile_n yet_o it_o be_v not_o so_o to_o the_o jew_n for_o the_o apostle_n preach_v nothing_o but_o that_o which_o
these_o more_o certain_a rule_n &_o help_v to_o find_v out_o the_o true_a sense_n first_o that_o the_o true_a grammatical_a sense_n of_o the_o word_n and_o speech_n use_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v sound_o and_o right_o understand_v by_o sound_a knowledge_n of_o grammar_n &_o rhetoric_n for_o the_o native_a signification_n of_o the_o word_n and_o use_n of_o the_o phrase_n whereunto_o much_o help_v conference_n of_o translation_n with_o translation_n &_o of_o all_o transtation_n if_o need_v be_v with_o the_o original_a tongue_n second_o that_o diligent_a consideration_n be_v have_v of_o the_o circumstance_n of_o the_o text_n in_o hand_n as_o namely_o what_o be_v the_o matter_n &_o scope_n thereof_o upon_o what_o occasion_n it_o be_v utter_v who_o utter_v it_o to_o who_o where_o &_o when_o three_o that_o it_o be_v take_v in_o such_o a_o sense_n as_o will_v agree_v best_a with_o these_o circumstance_n and_o stand_v well_o with_o all_o other_o place_n of_o scripture_n and_o last_o that_o no_o sense_n be_v admit_v but_o that_o which_o will_v stand_v with_o the_o sound_a proportion_n and_o sum_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o good_a manner_n teach_v we_o plain_o elsewhere_o in_o the_o scripture_n by_o these_o rule_v we_o doubt_v not_o but_o to_o justify_v &_o approve_v that_o to_o be_v the_o true_a sense_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o we_o take_v they_o in_o either_o for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o the_o truth_n which_o we_o hold_v or_o for_o the_o confutation_n of_o the_o error_n which_o you_o defend_v and_o such_o rule_v they_o be_v as_o the_o ancient_a father_n in_o defend_v the_o ancient_a catholic_a faith_n against_o heretic_n have_v always_o use_v and_o no_o other_o as_o appeareth_z in_o their_o work_n and_o such_o they_o be_v as_o augustine_n in_o his_o book_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n do_v prescribe_v as_o most_o necessary_a in_o this_o case_n to_o be_v follow_v as_o no_o man_n can_v or_o aught_o to_o make_v any_o exception_n against_o and_o yet_o such_o they_o be_v as_o will_v anon_o discover_v the_o ridiculous_a vanity_n of_o your_o interpretation_n in_o any_o controversy_n betwixt_o we_o and_o you_o for_o example_n let_v we_o try_v here_o by_o your_o interpretation_n of_o hoc_fw-la est_fw-la corpus_fw-la meum_fw-la which_o to_o be_v sound_a you_o will_v live_v and_o die_v in_o by_o what_o grammar_n or_o by_o help_n of_o what_o tongue_n or_o translation_n shall_v the_o word_n est_fw-fr be_v be_v all_o one_o with_o transubstantiatur_fw-la in_fw-la be_v transubstantiate_v into_o sure_o i_o be_o in_o no_o language_n nor_o in_o any_o dictionary_n shall_v you_o ever_o find_v the_o verb_n substantive_n take_v in_o that_o sense_n second_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n when_o those_o word_n be_v utter_v be_v a_o sacrament_n &_o christ_n speak_v they_o to_o his_o apostle_n at_o his_o last_o supper_n to_o the_o end_n to_o institute_v a_o sacrament_n to_o continue_v a_o dutiful_a remembrance_n of_o his_o death_n until_o his_o second_o come_v what_o reason_n be_v there_o then_o to_o the_o contrary_a but_o that_o this_o speech_n shall_v be_v take_v as_o the_o like_a speech_n always_o else_o have_v be_v and_o yet_o be_v in_o other_o sacrament_n where_o est_fw-la be_v never_o take_v couple_v the_o sign_n and_o the_o thing_n sign_v together_o whereof_o a_o sacrament_n consist_v as_o you_o do_v here_o for_o it_o be_v turn_v into_o but_o for_o signify_v which_o stand_v also_o well_o with_o the_o nature_n of_o a_o sacrament_n whereas_o you_o overthrow_v the_o nature_n thereof_o in_o so_o annihilate_v or_o transubstantiate_v of_o the_o sign_n that_o you_o leave_v no_o sign_n to_o bear_v any_o analogy_n of_o the_o thing_n resemble_v which_o be_v the_o ground_n of_o such_o sacramental_a phrase_n three_o your_o sense_n agree_v not_o with_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o scripture_n not_o only_o in_o that_o in_o the_o whole_a body_n of_o the_o scripture_n you_o can_v find_v est_fw-la be_v place_v as_o it_o be_v here_o betwixt_o two_o thing_n of_o diverse_a kind_n as_o bread_n and_o body_n be_v take_v in_o your_o sense_n and_o yet_o in_o such_o propositious_a you_o find_v it_o usual_o take_v for_o it_o signify_v or_o represent_v but_o also_o in_o that_o the_o scripture_n for_o all_o that_o speech_n call_v it_o bread_n still_o even_o while_o it_o be_v in_o eat_v 1._o corin._n 10._o &_o 11._o cap._n and_o expound_v the_o eat_v thereof_o to_o be_v a_o communion_n or_o partake_v with_o or_o of_o the_o body_n of_o christ_n and_o that_o spiritual_a not_o by_o corporal_a conjunction_n 1._o cor._n 10._o last_o your_o interpretation_n for_o the_o bring_n in_o &_o establish_v of_o a_o corporal_a &_o real_a eat_n of_o christ_n with_o the_o mouth_n of_o the_o body_n which_o be_v a_o thing_n never_o teach_v we_o in_o the_o word_n &_o but_o such_o a_o kind_n of_o feed_v on_o he_o as_o you_o yourselves_o confess_v judas_n and_o such_o may_v attain_v unto_o and_o be_v never_o the_o better_a shake_v yea_o subvert_v all_o those_o article_n that_o concern_v christ_n true_a manhood_n make_v he_o to_o have_v even_o for_o that_o needle_n presence_n sake_n a_o body_n without_o any_o of_o the_o essential_a and_o inseparable_a property_n of_o a_o body_n yea_o at_o one_o &_o selfsame_o time_n to_o have_v a_o body_n visible_a sensible_a and_o local_a in_o heaven_n &_o yet_o invisible_a insensible_a and_o without_o dimension_n of_o place_n in_o earth_n beside_o it_o be_v against_o good_a manner_n which_o forbid_v eat_v of_o man_n flesh_n and_o drink_v of_o his_o blood_n either_o open_o or_o secret_o cover_v under_o or_o in_o another_o thing_n and_o true_o auerroes_n have_v some_o reason_n of_o all_o man_n in_o the_o world_n to_o think_v such_o christian_n as_o you_o the_o most_o savage_a and_o foolish_a that_o first_o will_v fall_v down_o &_o worship_v a_o piece_n of_o bread_n for_o your_o god_n &_o when_o you_o have_v so_o do_v eat_v he_o up_o and_o devour_v he_o howsoever_o you_o please_v yourselves_o in_o this_o interpretation_n and_o in_o your_o imagination_n ground_v thereupon_o i_o be_o full_o persuade_v that_o this_o &_o your_o multitude_n of_o image_n and_o idol_n be_v two_o of_o the_o principal_a cause_n whereby_o you_o have_v harden_v the_o heart_n both_o of_o the_o turk_n and_o jew_n against_o christian_a religion_n and_o as_o i_o have_v read_v some_o of_o they_o have_v to_o some_o of_o your_o fellow_n be_v in_o hand_n to_o persuade_v they_o to_o turn_v from_o their_o religion_n to_o you_o yield_v these_o two_o reason_n why_o they_o think_v your_o worse_a than_o their_o own_o and_o consequent_o as_o sufficient_a cause_n why_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v to_o you_o now_o if_o i_o shall_v but_o bare_o recite_v a_o number_n of_o other_o your_o interpretation_n and_o collection_n of_o the_o scripture_n which_o yet_o with_o you_o go_v for_o very_a sound_n and_o catholic_a interpretation_n &_o collection_n i_o be_o sure_a it_o be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v every_o reader_n thereof_o that_o have_v any_o wit_n or_o discretion_n leave_v he_o to_o think_v that_o there_o be_v never_o heretic_n in_o the_o world_n that_o have_v more_o fond_o &_o vain_o interpret_v the_o scripture_n than_o you_o for_o example_n let_v the_o reader_n mark_v these_o for_o a_o taste_n god_n make_v two_o great_a light_n the_o sun_n &_o the_o moon_n that_o be_v the_o pope_n &_o the_o emperor_n &_o therefore_o as_o many_o degree_n as_o the_o moon_n be_v inferior_a to_o the_o son_n be_v the_o emperor_n inferior_a to_o the_o pope_n innocent_n de_fw-fr maioritate_fw-la &_o obedient_a &_o glossa_fw-la ibid._n peter_n say_v he_o have_v two_o sword_n that_o be_v the_o temporal_a &_o spiritual_a sword_n &_o therefore_o the_o pope_n have_v both_o power_n cornelius_z the_o bishop_n of_o bitonto_n in_o the_o council_n of_o trent_n blush_v not_o to_o apply_v to_o the_o pope_n these_o word_n the_o pope_n the_o light_n be_v come_v unto_o the_o world_n &_o man_n love_v darkness_n more_o than_o light_n every_o one_o the_o evil_a do_v hate_v the_o light_n &_o come_v not_o to_o the_o light_n lest_o his_o deed_n be_v reprove_v yea_o paulus_n aemilius_n in_o his_o 7._o book_n testify_v that_o the_o pope_n suffer_v the_o legate_n of_o cicilia_n be_v prostrate_a before_o he_o to_o say_v unto_o he_o qui_fw-la tollis_fw-la peccata_fw-la mundi_fw-la thou_o which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n have_v mercy_n upon_o we_o thou_o which_o take_v away_o the_o sin_n of_o the_o world_n grant_v we_o peace_n thus_o blasphemous_o apply_v that_o to_o the_o pope_n which_o belong_v to_o christ_n but_o you_o will_v say_v these_o be_v but_o the_o pope_n flatterer_n that_o make_v these_o exposition_n &_o application_n what_o then_o they_o be_v make_v &_o utter_v wtout_fw-fr check_n yea_o to_o the_o like_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o a_o picture_n once_o
afterwards_o in_o conclusion_n final_o may_v so_o fall_v away_o that_o he_o become_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o this_o be_v the_o second_o thing_n that_o i_o though_o good_a to_o admonish_v you_o and_o your_o reader_n of_o for_o this_o be_v also_o a_o most_o dangerous_a error_n shake_v all_o the_o certain_a ground_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o therefore_o to_o our_o comfort_n it_o be_v plain_o teach_v we_o contrary_a to_o this_o in_o the_o scripture_n that_o the_o gift_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n whereby_o be_v mean_v the_o gift_n of_o regeneration_n be_v without_o repentance_n rom._n 11.29_o and_o therefore_o who_o christ_n love_v once_o as_o his_o own_o as_o doubtless_o he_o do_v all_o they_o that_o be_v new_a bear_v once_o indeed_o john_n tell_v we_o he_o love_v to_o the_o end_n john_n 13.1_o and_o paul_n upon_o this_o ground_n that_o he_o know_v with_o who_o god_n once_o go_v so_o far_o as_o towards_o they_o to_o show_v his_o power_n and_o mercy_n in_o regenerate_v of_o they_o that_o he_o will_v never_o final_o forsake_v they_o but_o perfect_a in_o they_o that_o good_a work_n of_o his_o assure_v the_o philippian_n that_o he_o that_o have_v begin_v that_o good_a work_n in_o they_o will_v perform_v it_o until_o the_o day_n of_o jesus_n christ_n cap._n 1.6_o and_o yet_o i_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o such_o may_v have_v their_o fall_n and_o that_o in_o such_o sort_n that_o to_o their_o own_o sense_n &_o feeling_n and_o in_o the_o opinion_n of_o other_o they_o have_v quite_o fall_v from_o grace_n and_o all_o the_o good_a gift_n of_o regeneration_n but_o yet_o if_o before_o they_o be_v not_o sacramental_o only_a but_o real_o in_o truth_n new_o bear_v and_o cleanse_v from_o their_o sin_n in_o christ_n the_o spirit_n and_o grace_n of_o god_n in_o they_o be_v but_o in_o this_o case_n as_o the_o sun_n hide_v from_o our_o eye_n by_o thick_a cloud_n and_o as_o fire_v rake_v up_o in_o the_o ash_n which_o god_n will_v cause_v to_o shine_v again_o and_o to_o grow_v to_o a_o fire_n in_o they_o when_o he_o in_o his_o good_a time_n have_v cause_v the_o cloud_n to_o vanish_v and_o have_v remoove_v the_o ash_n this_o you_o can_v hold_v to_o be_v true_a in_o peter_n notwithstanding_o his_o fall_n because_o christ_n pray_v that_o his_o faith_n shall_v not_o fail_v luk._n 22._o why_o shall_v you_o not_o then_o upon_o christ_n prayer_n make_v general_o for_o all_o his_o elect_a that_o his_o heavenly_a father_n will_v keep_v they_o and_o that_o from_o evil_a joh._n 17.15_o conceive_v the_o like_a of_o all_o those_o who_o god_n have_v once_o seal_v indeed_o with_o the_o peculiar_a seal_n of_o regeneration_n proper_a only_a to_o his_o elect_a but_o it_o seem_v you_o think_v you_o have_v ground_n enough_o for_o this_o your_o opinion_n in_o that_o you_o see_v many_o that_o have_v seem_v to_o stand_v final_o to_o fall_v and_o that_o you_o find_v the_o promise_n run_v upon_o this_o condition_n if_o we_o persevere_v unto_o the_o end_n whereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o in_o the_o former_a you_o may_v be_v deceive_v two_o way_n either_o in_o take_v they_o to_o have_v stand_v indeed_o which_o yet_o never_o come_v unto_o it_o or_o in_o condemn_v they_o as_o final_o to_o have_v fall_v when_o as_o it_o may_v be_v otherwise_o and_o as_o for_o the_o second_o i_o say_v that_o as_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o promise_n run_v upon_o that_o condition_n so_o the_o lord_n will_v give_v all_o those_o grace_n to_o perform_v that_o condition_n that_o be_v once_o thus_o seal_v to_o be_v he_o for_o nothing_o shall_v separate_v they_o from_o the_o love_n of_o god_n in_o christ_n jesus_n rom._n 8._o &_o such_o be_v keep_v by_o the_o power_n of_o god_n through_o faith_n unto_o salvation_n 1._o pe._n 1.5_o you_o must_v therefore_o three_o be_v admonish_v that_o indeed_o you_o do_v misunderstand_v john_n &_o the_o other_o testimony_n to_o fortify_v johns_n doctrine_n as_o dangerous_o as_o ever_o do_v jovinian_a novatus_fw-la or_o any_o other_o if_o you_o take_v they_o so_o to_o be_v understand_v as_o it_o seem_v you_o do_v that_o by_o these_o place_n we_o be_v teach_v that_o none_o in_o any_o actual_a sin_n and_o have_v a_o mind_n to_o do_v evil_a be_v in_o that_o mean_a while_n the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o of_o the_o devil_n if_o this_o be_v true_a doctrine_n see_v it_o be_v write_v that_o no_o man_n live_v &_o sin_v not_o 1._o king_n 8._o no_o man_n can_v say_v his_o hart_n be_v clean_o pro._n 20._o but_o even_o when_o we_o be_v at_o the_o best_a we_o must_v needs_o confess_v that_o those_o good_a thing_n that_o we_o will_v do_v we_o do_v not_o &_o those_o evil_a thing_n that_o we_o will_v leave_v undo_v we_o do_v ro._n 7._o &_o that_o if_o we_o say_v we_o have_v no_o sin_n we_o deceive_v ourselves_o &_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o we_o 1._o joh._n 1._o &_o therefore_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o there_o be_v never_o child_n of_o god_n yet_o but_o often_o time_n he_o have_v have_v a_o mind_n to_o do_v evil_a and_o be_v sometime_o in_o actual_a sin_n i_o say_v these_o thing_n be_v most_o true_a because_o both_o scripture_n and_o experience_n teach_v they_o so_o to_o be_v if_o this_o doctrine_n of_o you_o be_v true_a also_o then_o so_o often_o as_o there_o be_v a_o purpose_n and_o performance_n of_o any_o actual_a sin_n and_o as_o long_o as_o that_o be_v find_v in_o man_n so_o often_o and_o so_o long_o he_o be_v the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n and_o not_o of_o god_n if_o this_o be_v thus_o if_o you_o know_v how_o far_o actual_a sin_n streatch_v and_o weigh_v without_o dissemble_v how_o prone_a the_o best_a man_n be_v to_o fall_v i_o be_o full_o persuade_v there_o be_v none_o of_o you_o all_o that_o a_o whole_a day_n together_o can_v have_v assurance_n that_o you_o be_v any_o other_o but_o the_o child_n of_o the_o devil_n for_o if_o the_o lord_n shall_v straite_o mark_v what_o be_v do_v amiss_o and_o enter_v into_o judgement_n with_o his_o servant_n no_o man_n can_v for_o one_o day_n space_n in_o truth_n clear_v himself_o of_o all_o actual_a sin_n commit_v either_o in_o word_n deed_n or_o thought_n by_o omit_v good_a thing_n command_v or_o do_v ill_a thing_n forbid_v if_o in_o stead_n of_o say_v in_o the_o mean_a while_n you_o have_v only_o say_v therein_o and_o in_o that_o respect_n he_o be_v not_o the_o child_n of_o god_n your_o speech_n may_v have_v be_v bear_v withal_o for_o indeed_o in_o the_o new_a bear_v though_o there_o be_v a_o new_a man_n yet_o as_o long_o as_o they_o live_v they_o shall_v find_v some_o relic_n of_o the_o old_a man_n remain_v and_o so_o a_o law_n in_o their_o member_n rebel_a against_o the_o law_n of_o the_o spirit_n rom._n 7._o gal._n 5._o by_o mean_n whereof_o it_o come_v to_o pass_v that_o though_o sin_n reign_v not_o in_o their_o mortal_a body_n and_o they_o never_o commit_v sin_n unto_o death_n and_o transgress_v with_o the_o whole_a man_n as_o the_o carnal_a man_n do_v yet_o in_o respect_n of_o this_o old_a man_n that_o be_v leave_v sin_n dwell_v in_o they_o as_o a_o tyrant_n and_o get_v they_o now_o and_o then_o to_o do_v he_o some_o service_n though_o not_o with_o the_o consent_n and_o like_n of_o the_o new_a but_o it_o strive_v against_o the_o same_o as_o it_o also_o evident_o appear_v in_o the_o two_o foresay_v chapter_n rom._n 7._o &_o gal._n 5._o wherein_o &_o in_o which_o respect_n they_o may_v be_v say_v not_o to_o be_v the_o child_n of_o god_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a while_n in_o that_o by_o the_o inner_a man_n these_o thing_n that_o be_v do_v through_o the_o tyranny_n of_o the_o old_a man_n be_v not_o consent_v unto_o but_o mislike_v &_o strive_v against_o by_o they_o therefore_o with_o paul_n they_o comfort_v themselves_o &_o say_v now_o if_o i_o do_v that_o which_o i_o will_v not_o it_o be_v no_o more_o i_o that_o do_v it_o but_o the_o sin_n that_o dwell_v in_o i_o ronvere_n 7._o &_o with_o john_n after_o that_o through_z the_o behold_v of_o this_o their_o infirmity_n they_o have_v confess_v that_o if_o they_o shall_v say_v they_o have_v no_o sin_n they_o deceive_v themselves_o &_o there_o be_v no_o truth_n in_o they_o they_o raise_v up_o themselves_o again_o say_v if_o we_o acknowledge_v our_o sin_n he_o be_v faithful_a &_o just_a to_o forgive_v we_o our_o sin_n &_o to_o cleanse_v we_o from_o all_o unrighteousness_n 1._o joh._n 1._o and_o so_o remain_v still_o even_o while_o they_o find_v these_o battle_n foil_n &_o rise_n again_o in_o themselves_o the_o child_n of_o god_n for_o s._n john_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v to_o deny_v simple_o that_o the_o new_a bear_v sin_n but_o to_o deny_v that_o they_o
to_o escape_v this_o &_o 1000_o more_o such_o contrariety_n betwixt_o your_o doctrine_n and_o the_o reveil_v will_n of_o god_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o by_o subtle_a sophistry_n fond_a quiddity_n and_o distinction_n devise_v of_o your_o own_o head_n without_o all_o warrant_n and_o ground_n from_o thence_o which_o in_o matter_n and_o question_n of_o divinity_n be_v intolerable_a these_o and_o such_o like_a contrariety_n betwixt_o the_o doctrine_n of_o your_o pope_n and_o prelate_n and_o the_o truth_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n we_o have_v oft_o observe_v and_o tell_v they_o of_o and_o yet_o find_v they_o most_o obstinate_o to_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o have_v cause_v we_o rather_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o heretical_a doctrine_n to_o call_v they_o wolf_n they_o in_o respect_n of_o their_o negligence_n only_a heretic_n and_o for_o this_o same_o cause_n see_v all_o you_o be_v thus_o infect_v you_o wish_v we_o in_o vain_a to_o join_v some_o of_o the_o best_a of_o they_o with_o some_o of_o the_o best_a of_o we_o to_o reform_v thing_n amiss_o in_o both_o for_o there_o be_v no_o hope_n of_o any_o good_a reformation_n at_o all_o where_o any_o such_o as_o you_o have_v any_o thing_n to_o do_v therein_o and_o see_v it_o be_v and_o have_v be_v so_o common_a a_o thing_n with_o we_o as_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a if_o you_o have_v read_v any_o of_o our_o book_n write_v against_o you_o to_o deny_v that_o you_o continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n which_o be_v preach_v unto_o you_o at_o the_o first_o yea_o seeing_z you_o all_o know_v that_o we_o count_v your_o synagogue_n antichristian_a for_o her_o manifold_a apostasy_n from_o the_o ancient_a doctrine_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n teach_v first_o unto_o the_o roman_n i_o wonder_v with_o what_o face_n or_o forehead_n you_o can_v write_v as_o you_o do_v in_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o chapter_n that_o we_o ourselves_o can_v deny_v if_o we_o will_v confess_v the_o truth_n but_o that_o you_o have_v continue_v in_o the_o doctrine_n that_o be_v first_o preach_v unto_o you_o and_o therefore_o not_o only_o for_o your_o lewdness_n of_o life_n and_o negligent_a shepherd_n &_o bad_a sheep_n do_v your_o kingdom_n decay_n as_o you_o will_v insinuate_v but_o especial_o for_o this_o also_o that_o in_o the_o point_v we_o strive_v with_o you_o about_o you_o be_v quite_o go_v from_o the_o ancient_a sound_a catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n first_o teach_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o receive_v and_o continue_v many_o year_n in_o the_o ancient_a roman_a church_n &_o other_o the_o only_a way_n therefore_o for_o you_o be_v to_o prevent_v a_o utter_a &_o universal_a subversion_n and_o confusion_n first_o to_o return_v again_o from_o your_o new_a antichristian_a religion_n &_o doctrine_n to_o the_o true_a ancient_a &_o catholic_a faith_n teach_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o they_o to_o amend_v your_o manner_n according_a to_o the_o direction_n of_o the_o same_o the_o xxxvii_o chapter_n all_o our_o ancient_a doctor_n will_n doctor_n this_o be_v but_o a_o arrogant_a false_a brag_n as_o we_o be_v able_a to_o prove_v come_v to_o particular_n when_o you_o will_n as_o well_o of_o the_o greek_a as_o of_o the_o latin_a church_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o the_o christian_n of_o all_o the_o four_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v in_o those_o day_n mean_v day_n christian_n have_v always_o vow_v and_o promise_v lawful_a thing_n only_o to_o god_n &_o they_o have_v have_v a_o care_n to_o make_v those_o vow_n and_o promise_n discreet_o &_o of_o such_o thing_n as_o they_o see_v he_o have_v make_v possible_a unto_o they_o which_o thing_n be_v neglect_v in_o the_o vow_n that_o i_o fear_v you_o most_o mean_v have_v make_v their_o promise_n and_o vow_n unto_o god_n even_o as_o we_o do_v now_o and_o at_o their_o baptism_n they_o do_v use_v even_o those_o very_a ceremony_n that_o we_o do_v with_o the_o selfsame_o exorcism_n adjuration_n and_o annoynting_n that_o we_o do_v use_v in_o our_o catholic_a church_n which_o you_o call_v papistical_a and_o to_o prove_v this_o true_a we_o will_v bring_v the_o say_v ancient_a doctor_n as_o witness_n if_o it_o please_v you_o to_o read_v the_o chapter_n the_o never_o man_n have_v worse_a hap_n in_o quote_v so_o few_o place_n as_o be_v evident_a in_o the_o answer_n to_o this_o chapter_n place_n that_o we_o will_v quote_v tertullian_n who_o live_v very_o near_o the_o apostle_n time_n do_v make_v mention_n in_o his_o book_n that_o he_o entitle_v de_fw-fr resurrectione_n carnis_fw-la of_o the_o anoint_v use_v at_o the_o baptism_n and_o of_o the_o renounce_v the_o devil_n &_o all_o his_o pomp_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr coronâ_fw-la militis_fw-la he_o do_v speak_v of_o the_o three_o dip_v under_o the_o water_n in_o the_o name_n of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n and_o the_o holy_a ghost_n s._n cyprian_n the_o martyr_n who_o be_v above_o 1300._o year_n ago_o do_v write_v in_o the_o second_o volume_n of_o his_o epistle_n epist_n 12._o how_o they_o do_v use_v in_o his_o time_n to_o give_v the_o holy_a chrism_n unto_o the_o child_n that_o be_v baptize_v origen_n in_o his_o twelve_o homily_n and_o in_o diverse_a other_o place_n of_o his_o work_n do_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o renounce_n of_o the_o devil_n at_o one_o baptism_n &_o of_o the_o make_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n upon_o child_n face_n when_o they_o be_v christen_v s._n john_n chrysostome_n in_o his_o 12._o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o epistle_n to_o the_o corinthian_n cap._n 4._o and_o in_o his_o first_o homily_n upon_o the_o first_o chapter_n to_o the_o ephesian_n he_o do_v make_v mention_n of_o the_o say_v renunciation_n make_v from_o the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n read_v i_o pray_v if_o it_o be_v your_o pleasure_n s._n aug._n in_o psal_n 31._o aug._n li_n 15._o contra_fw-la julia._n pelag._n li._n 1._o ca._n 2._o item_n de_fw-fr nuptiis_fw-la &_o concupiscentia_fw-la lib._n 1._o cap._n 20._o in_o joannem_fw-la tract_n 33._o in_o canonicam_fw-la joannis_n tract_n 3._o &_o tractat_fw-la 6._o et_fw-fr de_fw-fr eccle_n dogmat_fw-la cap._n 31._o de_fw-fr simbolo_fw-it lib._n 1._o cap._n 7._o &_o lib._n 2._o cap._n 11._o et_fw-la libro_fw-la de_fw-fr his_o qui_fw-la initiantur_fw-la sacris_fw-la cap._n 1._o basilius_n de_fw-fr spiritu_fw-la sancto_fw-it cap._n 15._o &_o 27._o arnobius_n in_o psalm_n 75._o all_o these_o doctor_n which_o be_v above_o a_o thousand_o year_n ago_o if_o you_o read_v in_o they_o the_o place_n that_o here_o i_o have_v quote_v you_o shall_v find_v that_o they_o do_v use_v at_o the_o baptism_n of_o their_o child_n those_o very_a ceremony_n that_o we_o do_v now_o use_v and_o that_o you_o do_v so_o mislike_v and_o as_o for_o confession_n before_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o sacrament_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v teach_v we_o that_o the_o ecclesiastical_a minister_n have_v authority_n to_o bind_v and_o forgive_v sin_n saint_n cyprian_n in_o his_o five_o sermon_n de_fw-fr lapsis_fw-la origen_n upon_o the_o thirty_o and_o seven_o psalm_n and_o in_o levit._n hom._n 2._o saint_n augustine_n libro_fw-la 2._o the_o visitatione_n infirmorum_fw-la cap._n 4._o saint_n cyril_n libro_fw-la 12._o in_fw-la johannem_fw-la cap._n 56._o saint_n hierom_n in_o ecclesiast_fw-la cap._n 10._o all_o these_o doctor_n according_a to_o the_o scripture_n in_o these_o place_n do_v confirm_v auricular_a confession_n and_o as_o for_o pray_v unto_o the_o saint_n in_o paradise_n to_o help_v we_o with_o their_o prayer_n read_v origen_n in_o his_o three_o homily_n upon_o the_o canticle_n and_o in_o his_o 2._o book_n upon_o job_n &_o his_o eight_o book_n in_o eccl._n read_v chrysostom_n in_o his_o eight_o homily_n upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o ephesian_n the_o four_o chapter_n and_o s._n augustine_n in_o his_o twenty_o book_n against_o faustus_n the_o one_o and_o twenty_o chapter_n and_o saint_n hierom_n against_o vigilantius_n all_o these_o make_v mention_n of_o the_o pray_n unto_o the_o saint_n and_o for_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a read_v tertullian_n in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr monogonia_n and_o in_o his_o book_n de_fw-fr corona_fw-la militis_fw-la and_o saint_n cyprian_n ad_fw-la plebem_fw-la furnensem_fw-la and_o in_o the_o first_o book_n of_o his_o epistle_n and_o origen_n in_o hieremiam_fw-la homil._n 12._o item_n in_o epist_n ad_fw-la rom._n libro_fw-la 8._o cap._n 11._o read_v chrysostome_n in_o his_o third_o homily_n upon_o the_o epistle_n of_o saint_n paul_n to_o the_o philippian_n and_o s._n augustine_n lib._n 2._o de_fw-la gen_fw-la against_o the_o manichee_n cap._n 20._o &_o in_o the_o encheridion_n ad_fw-la laurent_n cap._n 110._o item_n libro_fw-la de_fw-la cura_fw-la pro_fw-la mortuis_fw-la agenda_fw-la all_o these_o doctor_n who_o work_n have_v continue_v these_o 1200._o year_n do_v teach_v we_o all_o these_o thing_n that_o now_o we_o do_v observe_v the_o which_o
let_v these_o thing_n pass_v and_o to_o proceed_v to_o the_o scan_n and_o examine_v of_o that_o which_o you_o have_v set_v down_o in_o this_o chapter_n you_o begin_v with_o a_o arrogant_a and_o false_a brag_n that_o all_o ancient_a doctor_n greek_a and_o latin_a since_o the_o apostle_n time_n and_o all_o the_o christian_n of_o the_o four_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n that_o be_v in_o those_o day_n make_v their_o promise_n and_o vow_n etc._n etc._n as_o you_o do_v now_o you_o be_v wonderful_a general_n master_n albine_n and_o your_o word_n be_v very_o confident_a and_o swell_a shall_v we_o think_v that_o you_o be_v a_o man_n of_o that_o learning_n and_o read_v that_o you_o speak_v all_o this_o upon_o your_o own_o knowledge_n why_o then_o have_v such_o a_o cloud_n of_o witness_n &_o such_o a_o army_n royal_a allege_v you_o so_o few_o of_o they_o nine_o or_o ten_o be_v the_o most_o who_o name_n you_o have_v bring_v we_o in_o all_o this_o chapter_n and_o these_o you_o have_v bring_v forth_o upon_o the_o stage_n dumb_a or_o tongue-tied_a if_o we_o will_v hear_v they_o speak_v we_o must_v take_v the_o pain_n to_o attend_v upon_o they_o by_o your_o direction_n at_o a_o other_o time_n and_o sure_o in_o other_o place_n than_o you_o have_v point_v we_o we_o must_v hear_v a_o good_a sort_n of_o these_o speak_v for_o you_o or_o else_o we_o shall_v never_o find_v they_o willing_a to_o yield_v either_o you_o or_o your_o cause_n any_o one_o word_n good_a or_o bad_a as_o for_o vow_n and_o promise_n which_o you_o make_v to_o god_n unless_o thereby_o you_o mean_v only_o such_o vow_n and_o promise_n as_o both_o you_o and_o we_o make_v in_o our_o baptism_n to_o renounce_v the_o devil_n and_o all_o his_o work_n etc._n etc._n for_o than_o you_o have_v not_o so_o much_o as_o name_v we_o one_o father_n greek_a or_o latin_a nor_o yet_o any_o one_o christian_a of_o any_o of_o the_o four_o quarter_n of_o the_o world_n you_o speak_v of_o and_o indeed_o you_o have_v among_o you_o such_o rash_a foolish_a undiscreete_a and_o superstitious_a vow_n and_o promise_v a_o number_n for_o the_o which_o you_o can_v not_o nor_o can_v true_o allege_v any_o ancient_a and_o holy_a father_n or_o christian_n indeed_o thereinto_o give_v you_o any_o countenance_n such_o be_v you_o vow_v of_o single_a and_o chaste_a life_n universal_o among_o you_o tie_v to_o holy_a order_n your_o vow_n and_o promise_n to_o god_n some_o of_o you_o always_o &_o some_o for_o a_o time_n to_o abstain_v with_o opinion_n of_o holiness_n and_o merit_n from_o flesh_n and_o whitmeate_n your_o vow_n of_o pilgrimage_n to_o commit_v idolatry_n at_o this_o saint_n shrine_n &_o picture_n or_o at_o that_o and_o a_o number_n of_o like_a stamp_n of_o which_o kind_n of_o vow_n &_o promise_n if_o you_o mean_v i_o say_v first_o your_o glory_n in_o they_o be_v your_o shame_n for_o these_o be_v but_o plain_a will_n worship_n condemn_v by_o christ_n mat._n 15._o and_o by_o paul_n coloss_n 2._o &_o the_o very_a brand_n &_o mark_n of_o such_o as_o according_a to_o s._n paul_n pprophecy_n in_o the_o late_a day_n shall_v depart_v from_o the_o faith_n &_o give_v heed_n unto_o spirit_n of_o error_n and_o doctrine_n of_o devil_n 1._o tim._n 4._o and_o further_o i_o say_v such_o vow_n be_v better_o never_o make_v they_o make_v &_o be_v make_v they_o be_v of_o the_o nature_n &_o dangerous_a consequence_n that_o the_o best_a way_n be_v first_o to_o repent_v of_o the_o folly_n and_o rashness_n in_o make_v of_o they_o &_o then_o rather_o quite_o to_o give_v they_o over_o they_o with_o such_o superstition_n and_o impiety_n to_o seek_v to_o keep_v they_o as_o be_v use_v &_o break_v forth_o thereby_o shameful_o among_o you_o for_o it_o be_v plentiful_o prove_v both_o out_o of_o scripture_n and_o out_o of_o ambrose_n in_o the_o second_o canon_n of_o the_o eight_o council_n of_o toledo_n that_o oath_n that_o can_v be_v perform_v without_o sin_n be_v unlawful_a &_o not_o to_o bind_v and_o you_o can_v be_v ignorant_a that_o gratian_n causa_fw-la 22_o quest_n 4_o produce_v many_o testimony_n out_o of_o the_o father_n to_o the_o same_o end_n and_z the_o namely_o out_o of_o isidor_n there_o he_o have_v note_v &_o set_v down_o this_o for_o a_o good_a rule_n in_o such_o case_n as_o these_o of_o you_o be_v in_o malis_fw-la promissis_fw-la rescinde_fw-la fidem_fw-la in_fw-la turpi_fw-la voto_fw-la muta_n decretum_fw-la quod_fw-la incautè_fw-la vovisti_fw-la ne_fw-la facias_fw-la impia_fw-la est_fw-la promissio_fw-la quae_fw-la scelere_fw-la adimpletur_fw-la that_o be_v in_o evil_a promise_n perform_v they_o not_o in_o a_o filthy_a vow_n change_v thy_o purpose_n the_o which_o rash_o thou_o have_v vow_v do_v not_o it_o be_v a_o ungodly_a promise_n which_o be_v fulfil_v with_o sin_n and_o rather_o than_o man_n that_o have_v vow_v &_o promise_v a_o single_a life_n through_o the_o force_n of_o inward_a concupiscence_n shall_v burn_v and_o fall_n either_o to_o fornication_n adultery_n or_o any_o other_o uncleanness_n or_o filthiness_n of_o the_o flesh_n with_o be_v as_o heaven_n &_o earth_n &_o all_o the_o world_n know_v common_a fruit_n of_o your_o priestly_a vow_n of_o single_a life_n the_o ancient_a doctor_n that_o you_o brag_v of_o here_o so_o much_o will_v have_v they_o to_o marry_v and_o to_o repent_v of_o their_o rash_a vow_n as_o it_o be_v evident_a in_o cyril_n in_o his_o three_o &_o 16._o book_n upon_o leviticus_fw-la in_o cyprian_a li._n 1._o epist_n 11._o in_o epiphanius_n himself_o contra_fw-la apostolicos_fw-la l._n 2._o and_o in_o august_n de_fw-mi bono_fw-mi coniugali_fw-la &_o de_fw-la sanctâ_fw-la virginitate_fw-la cap._n 34._o but_o by_o the_o vow_n and_o promise_n that_o you_o speak_v of_o see_v you_o cite_v no_o father_n for_o any_o other_o i_o will_v take_v it_o that_o you_o mean_v only_o those_o that_o you_o use_v to_o make_v to_o god_n in_o baptism_n now_o they_o yet_o therein_o understand_v you_o strive_v without_o a_o adversary_n for_o we_o in_o our_o baptism_n do_v as_o solemn_o make_v those_o vow_n and_o promise_n to_o god_n to_o renounce_v the_o devil_n the_o world_n &_o the_o flesh_n wtall_a their_o fruit_n to_o believe_v in_o god_n and_o serve_v he_o all_o the_o day_n of_o our_o life_n as_o ever_o any_o of_o you_o do_v or_o do_v but_o you_o say_v further_o that_o all_o these_o holy_a doctor_n &_o christian_n you_o speak_v of_o at_o their_o baptism_n do_v use_v those_o very_a ceremony_n that_o you_o do_v with_o the_o selfsame_o exorcism_n adjuration_n and_o annoynting_n which_o you_o do_v use_v in_o your_o catholic_a church_n which_o we_o call_v papistical_a for_o the_o proof_n of_o the_o truth_n whereof_o you_o name_v we_o certain_a place_n out_o of_o tertullian_n cyprian_n origen_n chrysostome_n augustine_n basil_n and_o arnobius_n what_o be_v these_o all_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n and_o christian_n since_o the_o apostle_n time_n that_o you_o speak_v of_o though_o it_o be_v grant_v you_o that_o these_o seven_o in_o these_o place_n be_v for_o your_o ceremony_n which_o you_o use_v in_o baptism_n yet_o this_o be_v far_o from_o all_o that_o you_o speak_v of_o before_o thus_o to_o begin_v withal_o every_o body_n may_v see_v that_o you_o be_v a_o far_o mighty_a man_n in_o brag_v they_o you_o dare_v so_o m●●h_o as_o to_o make_v show_v you_o be_v in_o prove_v all_o you_o say_v but_o to_o pass_v by_o this_o fault_n herein_o you_o have_v commit_v a_o second_o fault_n worse_o than_o this_o first_o for_o whereas_o you_o allege_v these_o father_n here_o to_o countenance_v your_o whole_a pomp_n of_o ceremony_n now_o use_v by_o you_o in_o baptism_n there_o be_v not_o you_o know_v well_o enough_o or_o else_o you_o be_v not_o so_o cunning_a in_o these_o place_n as_o you_o will_v have_v man_n think_v you_o be_v the_o half_a of_o your_o ceremony_n &_o fashion_n so_o much_o as_o bare_o mention_v by_o they_o in_o these_o place_n exorcism_n abrenuntiation_n cross_v thrice_o dip_v and_o anoint_v be_v all_o that_o i_o can_v find_v any_o of_o these_o in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n to_o have_v mention_v but_o that_o they_o use_v the_o selfsame_o exorcism_n adjuration_n and_o anointing_n that_o you_o now_o use_v as_o you_o say_v i_o find_v not_o your_o chrism_n that_o you_o anoint_v withal_o must_v have_v as_o you_o hold_v balsom_a in_o it_o and_o in_o they_o i_o find_v only_o mention_v of_o oil_n and_o none_o of_o any_o balsom_a &_o your_o form_n of_o exorcise_a and_o adjure_v set_v down_o in_o your_o service_n book_n be_v not_o find_v in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n nay_o it_o be_v well_o enough_o know_v they_o be_v of_o young_a year_n by_o a_o fair_a deal_n but_o what_o be_v these_o few_o ceremony_n the_o name_n whereof_o and_o use_v whereof_o in_o some_o sort_n they_o have_v
who_o repentance_n and_o receive_v again_o into_o god_n church_n and_o so_o to_o a_o livelie_a hope_n of_o the_o forgiveness_n of_o his_o sin_n we_o read_v but_o that_o either_o paul_n or_o any_o other_o minister_n have_v he_o before_o they_o to_o bring_v he_o to_o this_o by_o auricular_a confession_n we_o neither_o read_v nor_o can_v believe_v and_o therefore_o cyril_n be_v rather_o quite_o against_o you_o than_o any_o thing_n for_o you_o in_o this_o point_n in_o that_o place_n now_o last_o of_o all_o be_v hierom_n upon_o the_o ten_o of_o ecclesiastes_n where_o all_o that_o he_o say_v be_v this_o if_o the_o serpent_n the_o devil_n privily_o bite_v any_o and_o infect_v he_o none_n be_v privy_a thereunto_o with_o the_o poison_n of_o sin_n if_o he_o that_o be_v strike_v hold_v his_o peace_n and_o repent_v not_o nor_o will_v confess_v his_o wound_n to_o his_o brother_n or_o master_n the_o master_n that_o have_v a_o tongue_n to_o cure_v he_o easy_o can_v profit_n he_o who_o of_o we_o deny_v this_o that_o he_o that_o will_v neither_o speak_v and_o repent_v nor_o thus_o by_o confession_n seek_v for_o better_a physic_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o spiritual_a physician_n than_o he_o can_v give_v himself_o can_v easy_o be_v profit_v by_o such_o a_o physician_n yea_o that_o more_o be_v we_o say_v and_o hold_v that_o he_o that_o will_v neither_o repent_v betwixt_o god_n and_o himself_o nor_o yet_o seek_v to_o those_o to_o show_v his_o estate_n that_o be_v appoint_v to_o teach_v he_o how_o to_o repent_v be_v in_o a_o most_o fearful_a case_n but_o yet_o again_o we_o say_v that_o they_o that_o in_o such_o secret_a sin_n whereof_o hierom_n plain_o speak_v will_v with_o david_n acknowledge_v their_o sin_n unto_o god_n and_o not_o hide_v their_o iniquity_n psalm_n 32._o but_o forsake_v it_o they_o shall_v have_v mercy_n proverb_n 28._o though_o they_o never_o bewray_v those_o their_o sin_n to_o any_o priest_n or_o minister_n neither_o have_v hierom_n nor_o any_o other_o of_o these_o father_n in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n say_v any_o thing_n to_o the_o contrary_n what_o be_v you_o therefore_o the_o near_a for_o any_o thing_n that_o they_o have_v say_v to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o universal_a and_o special_a enumeration_n of_o all_o sin_n that_o can_v be_v remember_v with_o all_o the_o circumstance_n thereof_o in_o the_o ear_n of_o a_o priest_n though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o well_o confess_v to_o god_n and_o repent_v of_o yea_o what_o have_v any_o of_o they_o speak_v in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n either_o to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n or_o universality_n of_o your_o kind_n of_o confession_n which_o be_v the_o thing_n you_o shall_v have_v prove_v by_o they_o or_o else_o you_o prove_v nothing_o in_o question_n or_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o let_v confession_n of_o sin_n unto_o they_o be_v free_a as_o it_o be_v in_o their_o time_n and_o in_o such_o case_n as_o man_n can_v otherwise_o so_o well_o get_v ease_n remedy_n and_o comfort_n against_o their_o sin_n we_o be_v very_o well_o content_v with_o they_o to_o persuade_v man_n that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a good_a and_o profitable_a way_n for_o they_o in_o sickness_n and_o in_o health_n to_o confess_v unto_o some_o discreet_a minister_n or_o minister_n what_o sin_n they_o be_v that_o so_o trouble_v they_o that_o so_o advise_v by_o they_o may_v be_v minister_v unto_o they_o according_o and_o this_o be_v the_o utmost_a that_o any_o of_o these_o place_n can_v have_v so_o much_o as_o any_o show_n to_o help_v you_o unto_o which_o be_v as_o far_o from_o you_o as_o chalk_n be_v from_o cheese_n you_o have_v make_v it_o as_o you_o have_v a_o matter_n of_o absolute_a necessity_n and_o have_v stretch_v it_o to_o such_o a_o full_a special_a recital_n of_o all_o and_o that_o by_o all_o person_n and_o sex_n at_o a_o appoint_a time_n of_o the_o year_n as_o you_o have_v also_o but_o enough_o of_o this_o matter_n now_o therefore_o let_v we_o go_v on_o and_o see_v whither_o you_o have_v any_o better_a hold_n in_o the_o father_n for_o the_o other_o two_o point_n behind_o the_o next_o be_v pray_v to_o saint_n in_o paradise_n to_o help_v we_o with_o their_o prayer_n for_o the_o which_o you_o allege_v only_o the_o name_n of_o four_o origen_n chrysostome_n augustine_n and_o hierom_n of_o which_o there_o be_v not_o one_o indeed_o that_o in_o any_o of_o his_o undoubted_a &_o know_a work_n to_o be_v his_o that_o so_o much_o as_o mention_v pray_v unto_o they_o for_o whereas_o you_o here_o have_v quote_v we_o three_o place_n of_o origen_n for_o this_o your_o purpose_n the_o two_o late_a i_o can_v think_v be_v he_o as_o for_o the_o last_o out_o of_o his_o 8._o book_n of_o ecclesiast_fw-la there_o be_v no_o such_o book_n father_v upon_o he_o either_o in_o any_o of_o his_o tome_n that_o i_o ever_o yet_o can_v see_v nor_o yet_o attribute_v unto_o he_o by_o tritenhemius_n who_o reckon_v up_o all_o that_o he_o be_v acquaint_v withal_o of_o he_o and_o as_o for_o that_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o his_o second_o book_n of_o job_n i_o grant_v whosoever_o be_v author_n of_o those_o tract_n he_o conclude_v the_o second_o tract_n with_o a_o gross_a popish_a prayer_n to_o job._n but_o certain_a it_o be_v those_o tract_n or_o book_n be_v never_o origens_n nor_o that_o prayer_n of_o his_o make_n or_o like_n my_o reason_n be_v these_o first_o the_o author_n thereof_o show_v himself_o a_o arrian_n in_o the_o first_o tract_n erasmus_n have_v observe_v that_o these_o of_o job_n be_v never_o but_o in_o latin_a whereas_o he_o write_v all_o his_o in_o greek_a and_o last_o because_o he_o himself_o if_o that_o prayer_n be_v he_o shall_v be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o for_o against_o celsus_n lib._n 8._o which_o book_n be_v his_o undoubted_o he_o answer_v the_o argument_n of_o celsus_n that_o it_o can_v offend_v the_o high_a god_n if_o the_o inferior_a god_n who_o celsus_n call_v daemon_n be_v his_o friend_n be_v worship_v with_o invocation_n to_o provoke_v they_o to_o solicit_v man_n cause_n with_o the_o high_a god_n which_o argument_n that_o heathen_a wretch_n there_o countenance_v with_o the_o fashion_n in_o prince_n court_n to_o solicit_v the_o prince_n by_o such_o as_o be_v about_o he_o even_o for_o all_o the_o world_n as_o you_o use_v to_o do_v your_o pray_v to_o saint_n tell_v he_o that_o one_o god_n be_v to_o be_v pray_v unto_o in_o the_o name_n of_o christ_n jesus_n and_o as_o for_o the_o saint_n and_o angel_n say_v he_o though_o they_o be_v god_n friend_n yet_o only_o god_n be_v to_o be_v please_v and_o please_v he_o and_o then_o also_o you_o please_v these_o pag._n 760._o and_o 774._o now_o in_o the_o other_o place_n which_o be_v the_o first_o you_o cite_v namely_o out_o of_o his_o 3._o homily_n upon_o the_o canticle_n all_o that_o he_o say_v savour_v any_o whit_n for_o this_o your_o purpose_n be_v this_o that_o he_o say_v it_o be_v not_o inconvenient_a to_o say_v they_o pray_v for_o we_o whereof_o likewise_o cap._n 13._o upon_o josua_n and_o upon_o the_o epistle_n to_o the_o roman_n he_o speak_v doubtful_o and_o stammer_o as_o one_o not_o full_o resolve_v that_o it_o be_v so_o and_o therefore_o confident_o to_o be_v advouch_v and_o teach_v which_o i_o think_v be_v the_o sow_v of_o some_o seed_n towards_o this_o opinion_n of_o you_o but_o who_o be_v so_o simple_a but_o he_o may_v see_v that_o though_o this_o be_v grant_v to_o be_v a_o undoubted_a and_o certain_a thing_n that_o they_o pray_v for_o we_o yet_o thereupon_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o we_o here_o must_v or_o may_v pray_v unto_o they_o and_o that_o origen_n himself_o never_o gather_v so_o thereupon_o it_o may_v appear_v sufficient_o by_o his_o foresay_v answer_v to_o celsus_n but_o howsoever_o it_o be_v know_v well_o enough_o that_o origen_n be_v not_o think_v of_o the_o ancient_a father_n themselves_o a_o author_n of_o the_o credit_n that_o whatsoever_o he_o teach_v or_o think_v ought_v straight_o to_o be_v receive_v as_o true_a and_o sound_a for_o it_o appear_v plain_o in_o epiphanius_n tom._n 2._o haeresi_fw-la 64._o and_o in_o his_o epistle_n to_o john_n of_o jerusalem_n that_o his_o opinion_n of_o he_o be_v that_o he_o be_v not_o sound_v in_o doctrine_n and_o hierom_n ad_fw-la oceanum_n say_v flat_o of_o he_o thus_o i_o have_v praise_v origen_n as_o a_o interpreter_n but_o not_o as_o a_o teacher_n his_o wit_n not_o faith_n and_o further_o he_o say_v of_o he_o believe_v i_o that_o have_v experience_n his_o doctrine_n be_v poison_v disagree_v from_o the_o scripture_n offer_v violence_n unto_o they_o and_o eusebius_n out_o of_o aegesippus_n lib._n 3._o cap._n 32._o note_v that_o unto_o those_o time_n about_o which_o he_o begin_v to_o flourish_v the_o church_n remain_v
not_o amiss_o unto_o my_o former_a answer_n to_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n to_o annex_v this_o short_a answer_n thereunto_o his_o first_o sign_n of_o such_o as_o he_o speak_v of_o he_o say_v be_v their_o departure_n from_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n wherein_o they_o be_v baptize_v &_o first_o receive_v christian_n faith_n and_o religion_n and_o this_o to_o be_v such_o a_o sign_n he_o prove_v out_o of_o the_o second_o chapter_n of_o s._n johns_n first_o epistle_n where_o he_o speak_v of_o such_o say_v they_o depart_v from_o we_o but_o they_o be_v not_o of_o we_o for_o if_o they_o have_v they_o will_v still_o have_v continue_v with_o us._n whereupon_o he_o think_v that_o forasmuch_o as_o he_o say_v we_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o we_o be_v the_o man_n that_o have_v thus_o depart_v from_o their_o common_a know_a catholic_a church_n faith_n and_o religion_n wherein_o we_o be_v first_o baptize_v and_o that_o we_o can_v say_v that_o they_o have_v so_o depart_v from_o we_o they_o still_o remain_v in_o the_o same_o church_n faith_n and_o religion_n that_o they_o first_o receive_v that_o of_o necessity_n we_o must_v be_v enforce_v to_o grant_v that_o this_o sign_n agree_v to_o we_o and_o not_o to_o they_o this_o good_a christian_n that_o he_o have_v say_v be_v of_o foam_n force_n if_o he_o any_o or_o all_o his_o fellow_n together_o be_v ever_o able_a to_o prove_v that_o they_o their_o church_n faith_n and_o religion_n be_v such_o as_o saint_n john_n speak_v of_o when_o he_o so_o tax_v man_n for_o their_o departure_n therfrom_o but_o see_v only_o most_o beggarly_a all_o the_o pack_n of_o they_o this_o be_v the_o main_a question_n betwixt_o they_o and_o we_o always_o take_v this_o for_o grant_v they_o even_o for_o their_o bold_a impudent_a and_o importunate_a beg_n of_o it_o which_o we_o will_v never_o grant_v they_o nor_o they_o shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o win_v at_o our_o hand_n all_o that_o he_o have_v say_v herein_o be_v childish_a and_o vain_a for_o we_o be_v always_o most_o ready_a and_o willing_a to_o join_v this_o issue_n with_o they_o for_o and_o about_o all_o the_o controversy_n among_o we_o that_o if_o we_o be_v not_o able_a by_o due_a conference_n of_o the_o catholic_a and_o apostolic_a doctrine_n teach_v by_o the_o apostle_n &_o apostolic_a man_n in_o the_o primitive_a church_n testify_v and_o extant_a in_o their_o own_o undoubted_a writing_n with_o we_o that_o we_o be_v of_o the_o same_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n faith_n and_o religion_n that_o they_o be_v and_o that_o the_o romish_a church_n in_o the_o thing_n wherein_o we_o differ_v from_o they_o be_v clean_o depart_v from_o they_o and_o from_o the_o church_n of_o christ_n her_o faith_n and_o religion_n that_o then_o be_v that_o then_o we_o will_v as_o he_o say_v most_o willing_o submit_v ourselves_o yield_v and_o recant_v and_o i_o hope_v in_o answer_v of_o john_n de_fw-fr albine_n upon_o occasion_n in_o sundry_a place_n i_o have_v so_o show_v the_o agreeablenesse_n of_o our_o faith_n and_o religion_n with_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o manifold_a disagreement_n of_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v from_o they_o and_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n plant_v by_o they_o as_o that_o every_o one_o even_o thereby_o sufficient_o may_v see_v that_o not_o we_o but_o they_o be_v the_o man_n that_o saint_n john_n speak_v of_o that_o have_v depart_v from_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n faith_n and_o religion_n and_o that_o therefore_o this_o sign_n do_v so_o far_o better_o agree_v to_o papist_n then_o to_o we_o that_o if_o this_o offerer_n will_v be_v as_o good_a as_o his_o word_n he_o must_v present_o submit_v himself_o yield_v and_o recant_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n the_o manifest_a contrariety_n betwixt_o their_o doctrine_n and_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n make_v manifest_a unto_o we_o by_o the_o view_n of_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o and_o the_o notorious_a difference_n betwixt_o their_o church_n practise_v now_o and_o the_o ancient_a church_n of_o rome_n for_o six_o hundred_o year_n after_o christ_n at_o the_o least_o make_v likewise_o evident_a unto_o we_o by_o all_o sound_a monument_n of_o antiquity_n have_v assure_v we_o that_o in_o respect_n of_o they_o and_o their_o romish_a synagogue_n in_o these_o late_a day_n to_o embolden_v we_o to_o do_v as_o we_o have_v god_n from_o heaven_n by_o a_o angel_n say_v unto_o we_o go_v out_o of_o she_o my_o people_n lest_o you_o be_v partaker_n of_o her_o sin_n and_o so_o receive_v of_o her_o punishment_n apoc._n 18_o vers_fw-la 4._o and_o therefore_o as_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o abraham_n to_o follow_v the_o lord_n call_v gen_n 12._o to_o depart_v out_o of_o his_o own_o country_n chaldea_n and_o to_o forsake_v the_o abomination_n thereof_o as_o it_o be_v wisdom_n for_o lot_n at_o the_o admonition_n of_o the_o angel_n to_o go_v out_o of_o sodom_n gen._n 19_o and_o as_o it_o be_v necessary_a that_o christ_n and_o his_o shall_v separate_v themselves_o from_o the_o high_a priest_n scribes_z and_o pharisee_n and_o their_o error_n and_o superstition_n though_o they_o then_o &_o their_o follower_n brag_v that_o they_o be_v the_o people_n of_o god_n &_o his_o church_n so_o be_v it_o meet_v &_o requisite_a for_o we_o to_o depart_v as_o we_o have_v from_o their_o popish_a church_n and_o the_o popery_n thereof_o and_o as_o for_o our_o receive_v our_o baptism_n among_o they_o that_o bind_v we_o no_o more_o to_o hold_v communion_n with_o they_o still_o in_o their_o false_a &_o erroneous_a religion_n than_o the_o receive_n of_o circumcision_n bind_v christ_n &_o his_o apostle_n &_o those_o of_o the_o jew_n that_o beleve_v by_o their_o doctrine_n to_o continue_v fellowship_n with_o the_o blind_a and_o superstitious_a synagogue_n of_o the_o hard_a heart_a jew_n or_o the_o receive_n of_o baptism_n in_o former_a time_n at_o the_o hand_n of_o the_o ancient_a heretic_n the_o arrian_n or_o any_o other_o such_o like_a bind_v they_o that_o be_v baptize_v by_o such_o y●_z they_o may_v not_o separate_v themselves_o from_o such_o to_o return_v home_o again_o to_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n again_o if_o they_o think_v that_o man_n be_v bind_v always_o to_o live_v and_o die_v in_o that_o religion_n whereof_o they_o be_v that_o baptize_v they_o why_o do_v they_o labour_v by_o their_o jesuit_n &_o seminary_n to_o seduce_v to_o their_o religion_n such_o as_o we_o have_v baptize_v but_o yet_o to_o touch_v they_o more_o near_o for_o all_o this_o brag_n of_o their_o still_o continue_v in_o the_o faith_n and_o religion_n they_o first_o receive_v let_v even_o their_o own_o baptism_n and_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n that_o they_o after_o profess_v be_v compare_v together_o and_o the_o contrary_n will_v appear_v for_o they_o be_v all_o baptize_v in_o the_o name_n only_o of_o the_o father_n the_o son_n &_o the_o holy_a ghost_n as_o it_o be_v well_o know_v they_o be_v thereby_o they_o be_v bind_v only_o to_o believe_v in_o this_o trinity_n in_o unity_n and_o unity_n in_o trinity_n and_o yet_o afterwards_o all_o the_o sort_n of_o they_o notwithstanding_o the_o apostle_n creed_n and_o all_o other_o ancient_a creed_n teach_v they_o the_o same_o become_v plain_a apostate_n from_o this_o faith_n in_o believe_v in_o a_o number_n both_o of_o person_n and_o thing_n that_o without_o blasphemy_n they_o can_v count_v either_o god_n the_o father_n god_n the_o son_n or_o god_n the_o holy_a ghost_n proof_n and_o most_o palpable_a demonstration_n hereof_o be_v their_o belief_n in_o their_o own_o merit_n merit_n of_o other_o pope_n pardon_n hallow_v water_n &_o other_o hallow_v thing_n &_o their_o belief_n in_o and_o therefore_o pray_v unto_o saint_n &_o angel_n in_o the_o wonderful_a providence_n of_o god_n doubtless_o this_o form_n of_o baptism_n &_o these_o cree_v be_v preserve_v &_o continue_v among_o they_o not_o only_o to_o make_v it_o even_o thereby_o evident_a whatsoever_o any_o of_o they_o brag_v to_o the_o contrary_n never_o so_o oft_o that_o they_o be_v the_o man_n that_o daily_o depart_v both_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n first_o teach_v they_o &_o their_o forefather_n and_o after_o particular_o in_o their_o baptism_n confirm_v to_o every_o one_o of_o they_o but_o also_o to_o make_v they_o before_o both_o god_n &_o man_n without_o all_o excuse_n of_o their_o so_o gross_a apostasy_n from_o the_o same_o notwithstanding_o whereas_o they_o know_v &_o all_o the_o world_n else_o that_o know_v we_o know_v that_o we_o simple_o continue_v in_o this_o faith_n first_o deliver_v untd_v we_o brief_o by_o the_o holy_a catholic_a church_n in_o these_o cree_v &_o daily_o seal_v unto_o we_o in_o our_o baptism_n &_o that_o even_o for_o that_o it_o be_v that_o we_o be_v so_o hate_v and_o persecute_v of_o
they_o that_o with_o they_o we_o will_v not_o run_v out_o from_o this_o church_n and_o faith_n to_o believe_v in_o a_o 1000_o thing_n that_o be_v not_o god_n as_o they_o do_v and_o therefore_o these_o thing_n consider_v by_o this_o note_n they_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v the_o antichristian_a false_a prophet_n heretic_n &_o schismatics_n that_o he_o speak_v of_o and_o not_o we_o his_o second_o sure_a mark_n sign_n and_o token_n of_o false_a prophet_n etc._n etc._n be_v say_v he_o that_o they_o be_v depart_v from_o the_o catholic_a church_n do_v of_o themselves_o &_o of_o their_o own_o authority_n without_o warrant_n be_v not_o send_v set_v up_o a_o new_a gospel_n a_o new_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o so_o by_o preach_v a_o new_a doctrine_n assemble_v and_o set_v up_o a_o new_a church_n and_o congregation_n and_o to_o prove_v this_o heb._n 5._o rom._n 10._o and_o exod._n 4._o be_v quote_v whence_o only_o we_o may_v learn_v to_o this_o purpose_n that_o none_o may_v take_v upon_o they_o a_o office_n in_o god_n house_n without_o lawful_a call_n and_o warrant_n from_o he_o yet_o hereupon_o as_o though_o these_o be_v most_o pregnant_a place_n to_o prove_v that_o to_o be_v necessary_a to_o a_o lawful_a call_n which_o the_o learned_a protestant_n can_v never_o prove_v to_o be_v in_o our_o call_n he_o promise_v likewise_o to_o yield_v and_o to_o recant_v when_o we_o shall_v be_v able_a to_o prove_v our_o just_a and_o due_a vocation_n ordinary_o or_o extraordinary_o to_o proceed_v of_o god_n and_o not_o only_o of_o man_n by_o his_o own_o word_n in_o describe_v this_o note_n or_o mark_n two_o thing_n must_v concur_v to_o the_o make_n of_o it_o namely_o the_o preach_n of_o a_o new_a religion_n or_o gospel_n and_o the_o do_v of_o it_o without_o a_o just_a and_o due_a vocation_n from_o god_n and_o yet_o in_o the_o prove_v it_o to_o be_v such_o a_o mark_n &_o in_o the_o apply_v it_o to_o we_o he_o forget_v altogether_o the_o former_a &_o make_v only_o show_v of_o proof_n for_o the_o late_a belike_o his_o own_o conscience_n tell_v he_o that_o howsoever_o it_o be_v a_o easy_a matter_n to_o insinuate_v that_o our_o religion_n be_v new_a that_o yet_o he_o be_v not_o able_a so_o much_o as_o to_o make_v any_o show_n that_o he_o can_v prove_v it_o so_o to_o be_v indeed_o and_o touch_v the_o other_o howsoever_o the_o place_n quote_v by_o he_o serve_v to_o prove_v a_o lawful_a call_n or_o send_v by_o god_n to_o be_v necessary_a for_o and_o to_o all_o such_o as_o shall_v take_v any_o office_n upon_o they_o in_o his_o church_n yet_o they_o prove_v not_o at_o all_o that_o there_o be_v any_o thing_n needful_a to_o the_o prove_v of_o our_o vocation_n to_o be_v such_o want_v in_o we_o neither_o do_v he_o name_v any_o thing_n require_v in_o any_o of_o these_o place_n to_o be_v in_o we_o which_o he_o can_v say_v we_o want_v which_o it_o be_v likely_a he_o will_v not_o have_v omit_v to_o have_v do_v if_o he_o have_v see_v that_o with_o any_o probability_n he_o may_v have_v do_v it_o and_o therefore_o any_o man_n may_v see_v that_o even_o in_o this_o sign_n as_o in_o the_o former_a his_o only_a ground_n be_v a_o false_a supposition_n that_o those_o thing_n must_v needs_o be_v grant_v he_o all_o which_o both_o most_o just_o and_o confident_o we_o always_o deny_v for_o without_o any_o proof_n or_o shadow_n of_o proof_n he_o in_o one_o period_n assume_v three_o thing_n against_o we_o most_o untrue_o &_o slanderous_o as_o at_o large_a in_o sundry_a place_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v i_o have_v make_v it_o manifest_a namely_o that_o we_o be_v go_v out_o of_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n that_o we_o have_v set_v up_o a_o new_a faith_n and_o religion_n and_o that_o we_o have_v assemble_v a_o new_a church_n and_o congregation_n yea_o christian_n reader_n if_o thou_o will_v but_o vouchsafe_v by_o the_o table_n annex_v unto_o this_o answer_n of_o i_o to_o turn_v to_o the_o place_n in_o the_o say_v answer_v where_o these_o point_n be_v handle_v the_o antiquity_n of_o our_o church_n and_o religion_n the_o newness_n of_o popery_n and_o the_o contrariety_n betwixt_o the_o romish_a church_n that_o now_o be_v &_o the_o scripture_n father_n and_o counsel_n in_o the_o true_a catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n &_o the_o lawfulness_n of_o our_o call_n to_o the_o ministry_n and_o the_o unlawfulness_n of_o their_o priesthood_n and_o vocation_n thereunto_o &_o unto_o other_o prelacy_n among_o they_o and_o when_o thou_o have_v find_v they_o to_o read_v over_o wtout_fw-fr partiality_n what_o i_o have_v write_v hereof_o i_o doubt_v not_o but_o thereby_o thou_o will_v see_v not_o only_o that_o he_o unjust_o have_v here_o charge_v we_o with_o these_o three_o fault_n but_o the_o most_o just_o we_o may_v charge_v they_o with_o them_z al._n and_o therefore_o thereunto_o refer_v thou_o for_o further_a answer_n unto_o this_o threefold_a charge_n of_o he_o in_o this_o place_n upon_o that_o which_o there_o thou_o shall_v find_v i_o hope_v with_o i_o thou_o will_v conclude_v that_o this_o be_v a_o mark_n and_o a_o most_o certain_a sign_n of_o antichristian_a heretic_n as_o he_o say_v that_o it_o stand_v fair_a upon_o they_o and_o not_o upon_o we_o &_o therefore_o he_o shall_v recant_v the_o three_o sign_n &_o token_n that_o the_o offerer_n talk_v of_o be_v that_o such_o over_o and_o above_o the_o property_n touch_v in_o the_o two_o former_a do_v preach_v and_o teach_v contentious_o and_o seditious_o against_o the_o doctrine_n before_o time_n teach_v of_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n as_o namely_o say_v he_o against_o the_o sacrament_n of_o christ_n church_n by_o a_o flat_a denial_n of_o many_o of_o they_o against_o the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n body_n in_o the_o holy_a eucharist_n against_o the_o bless_a sacrifice_n of_o the_o mass_n propitiatory_a both_o for_o the_o live_v and_o the_o dead_a against_o penance_n &_o the_o worthy_a fruit_n thereof_o by_o fast_v watch_v and_o prayer_n &_o all_o straightness_n of_o life_n against_o vow_n invocation_n of_o saint_n prayer_n for_o soul_n depart_v and_o final_o against_o the_o church_n itself_o flat_o deny_v that_o christ_n have_v here_o upon_o earth_n any_o spouse_n or_o visible_a church_n to_o be_v hear_v speak_v perceive_v or_o see_v the_o ground_n of_o which_o sign_n he_o make_v that_o saying_n hebrues_n 13_o be_v you_o not_o carry_v away_o with_o diverse_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n so_o term_v of_o the_o apostle_n as_o he_o expound_v he_o because_o they_o agree_v not_o but_o be_v contrary_a to_o the_o receive_a and_o common_a know_v doctrine_n of_o christ_n holy_a catholic_a church_n whereupon_o he_o grow_v to_o his_o conclusion_n that_o when_o the_o learned_a protestant_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o prove_v that_o they_o and_o not_o we_o be_v by_o our_o preach_n of_o these_o strange_a doctrine_n the_o raiser_n up_o of_o these_o strife_n and_o contention_n than_o he_o will_v recant_v and_o not_o before_o whereunto_o i_o answer_v that_o understand_v by_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n which_o be_v know_v and_o acknowledge_v so_o to_o be_v always_o of_o he_o and_o his_o faithful_a member_n than_o we_o grant_v that_o this_o be_v a_o right_a mark_n of_o such_o as_o he_o will_v have_v it_o to_o be_v a_o mark_n of_o and_o that_o worthy_o in_o the_o thirteen_o of_o the_o hebrews_n all_o man_n be_v warn_v to_o take_v heed_n that_o they_o be_v not_o carry_v away_o with_o diverse_a and_o strange_a doctrine_n from_o that_o which_o she_o have_v universal_o teach_v and_o receive_v but_o so_o take_v the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n and_o not_o otherwise_o i_o say_v it_o and_o have_v prove_v it_o in_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n that_o now_o be_v have_v too_o long_o and_o do_v still_o not_o only_o contentious_o and_o seditious_o but_o also_o furious_o tyrannical_o bloude_o and_o every_o way_n antichristian_o preach_v against_o the_o doctrine_n before_o time_n teach_v by_o she_o and_o common_o receive_v and_o profess_v by_o she_o touch_v the_o true_a use_n of_o the_o law_n and_o the_o gospel_n the_o office_n of_o christ_n &_o faith_n in_o he_o the_o doctrine_n of_o faith_n and_o work_v and_o of_o prayer_n and_o the_o sacrament_n and_o almost_o of_o all_o other_o principal_a point_n of_o the_o true_a christian_a religion_n and_o thus_o i_o be_o sure_a he_o must_v understand_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n if_o either_o he_o will_v have_v this_o to_o be_v a_o certain_a sign_n of_o heretic_n or_o to_o be_v think_v right_o to_o have_v expound_v the_o 13._o to_o the_o hebrew_n and_o therefore_o understand_v by_o the_o common_a know_v catholic_a church_n of_o christ_n
to_o offer_v he_o again_o to_o his_o father_n if_o by_o penance_n he_o understand_v repentance_n we_o neither_o preach_v against_o it_o nor_o against_o any_o worthy_a fruit_n thereof_o for_o we_o most_o earnest_o call_v for_o both_o but_o if_o by_o penance_n be_v understand_v either_o voluntary_a or_o enjoin_v penance_n as_o they_o common_o take_v it_o join_v with_o a_o opinion_n thereby_o either_o to_o satisfy_v for_o sin_n past_a or_o to_o merit_v at_o god_n hand_n because_o we_o know_v that_o such_o penance_n and_o all_o the_o fruit_n thereof_o be_v abominable_a before_o god_n because_o thereby_o christ_n be_v rob_v of_o that_o honour_n of_o a_o full_a and_o perfect_a saviour_n in_o &_o by_o himself_o alone_o that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o than_o we_o grant_v as_o we_o have_v just_a cause_n we_o preach_v against_o it_o otherwise_o fast_v straightness_n of_o life_n watch_v and_o lawful_a vow_n to_o make_v we_o more_o ready_a &_o fervent_a in_o holy_a prayer_n we_o commend_v and_o urge_v indeed_o pray_v to_o saint_n because_o we_o have_v neither_o example_n commandment_n nor_o promise_n in_o god_n book_n to_o encourage_v we_o thereunto_o but_o all_o to_o the_o contrary_a we_o condemn_v as_o gross_a idolatry_n and_o likewise_o prayer_n for_o soul_n depart_v as_o they_o use_v it_o to_o relieve_v fowl_n in_o purgatory_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n and_o sundry_a other_o we_o preach_v against_o but_o what_o we_o teach_v of_o these_o two_o point_n and_o what_o not_o and_o what_o reason_n we_o have_v for_o our_o so_o do_v and_o how_o quite_o void_a they_o be_v of_o all_o ground_n for_o they_o i_o refer_v thou_o to_o the_o 37_o chapter_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v where_o i_o have_v at_o large_a show_v these_o thing_n and_o thus_o much_o therefore_o for_o this_o 3_o sign_n the_o next_o be_v to_o bring_v a_o schism_n into_o the_o church_n contrary_a to_o paul_n exhortation_n 1._o cor_n 1._o and_o that_o such_o a_o schism_n as_o whereby_o not_o only_o one_o member_n shall_v be_v separate_v from_o a_o other_o but_o the_o whole_a mystical_a body_n from_o the_o true_a head_n christ_n jesus_n which_o we_o to_o have_v do_v in_o separate_a ourselves_o from_o their_o church_n &_o not_o they_o he_o assume_v and_o so_o conclude_v when_o the_o learned_a protestant_n can_v show_v the_o contrary_a that_o he_o will_v recant_v and_o not_o before_o still_o thus_o thou_o may_v see_v good_a reader_n that_o this_o man_n be_v no_o changeling_n for_o unless_o that_o be_v grant_v he_o which_o be_v the_o main_a point_n betwixt_o we_o that_o their_o church_n be_v the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n &_o their_o doctrine_n the_o sound_a catholic_a faith_n and_o religion_n he_o have_v no_o ground_n or_o foundation_n for_o any_o thing_n he_o say_v for_o he_o can_v be_v so_o ignorant_a as_o to_o imagine_v that_o every_o one_o straight_o be_v author_n of_o such_o a_o schism_n as_o he_o here_o speak_v of_o that_o by_o doctrine_n draw_v other_o from_o every_o society_n or_o company_n invest_v themselves_o with_o the_o name_n of_o the_o church_n and_o brag_v that_o they_o have_v the_o truth_n for_o what_o will_v he_o then_o make_v of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n who_o in_o their_o time_n draw_v so_o many_o after_o they_o from_o hold_v any_o long_a comm●●tion_n with_o the_o synagogue_n of_o the_o jew_n that_o then_o i_o be_o sure_a brag_v as_o confident_o of_o both_o these_o as_o this_o man_n and_o his_o fellow_n do_v now_o or_o what_o will_v he_o say_v to_o those_o ancient_a catholic_n after_o liberius_n time_n that_o when_o arrianisme_n have_v in_o great_a part_n over_o run_v the_o world_n and_o the_o arrian_n for_o many_o year_n together_o brag_v themselves_o to_o be_v the_o only_a 〈◊〉_d catholic_n disgrace_v they_o that_o be_v so_o indeed_o with_o the_o name_n of_o omousians_n that_o yet_o though_o they_o have_v get_v both_o bishop_n and_o emperor_n so_o many_o and_o so_o fast_o of_o their_o opinion_n that_o they_o have_v in_o ten_o several_a counsel_n go_v sentence_n of_o their_o side_n cease_v not_o labour_v and_o travel_v until_o they_o have_v draw_v man_n again_o to_o break_v from_o they_o and_o to_o join_v with_o the_o poor_a persecute_v &_o contempt_n the_o number_n that_o then_o yet_o persecute_v in_o the_o truth_n i_o be_o sure_a they_o 〈◊〉_d not_o for_o shame_n for_o all_o this_o count_v either_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n or_o these_o ancient_a catholic_n antichristian_a heretic_n or_o schismatics_n and_o our_o draw_v of_o man_n by_o our_o doctrine_n now_o in_o these_o late_a day_n from_o they_o be_v nothing_o else_o in_o truth_n but_o a_o imitate_v as_o nigh_o as_o we_o can_v these_o renown_a and_o undoubted_a good_a precedent_n &_o example_n that_o so_o the_o kingdom_n of_o antichrist_n according_a to_o saint_n paul_n pprophecy_n may_v fall_v into_o consumption_n 2._o thessalonian_o 2_o and_o that_o great_a babylon_n may_v yet_o at_o length_n as_o it_o be_v reveal_v unto_o joh._n revelation_n cap._n 14._o fall_v and_o come_v down_o for_o not_o only_o we_o see_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v make_v a_o schism_n but_o such_o a_o apostasy_n even_o in_o the_o fundamental_a point_n of_o christian_a religion_n from_o christ_n and_o his_o church_n that_o there_o be_v no_o remedy_n but_o that_o we_o must_v break_v of_o from_o she_o as_o we_o do_v or_o else_o we_o can_v never_o have_v communion_n indeed_o in_o christ_n with_o his_o true_a church_n though_o therefore_o we_o know_v and_o at_o the_o first_o know_v that_o peace_n unity_n and_o concord_n be_v precious_a thing_n and_o by_o all_o lawful_a mean_n to_o be_v labour_v for_o yet_o know_v withal_o as_o we_o do_v &_o do_v that_o it_o be_v unity_n in_o verity_n and_o not_o in_o error_n &_o impiety_n with_o christ_n &_o not_o with_o antichrist_n that_o be_v so_o much_o to_o be_v set_v by_o blame_v we_o not_o for_o choose_v rather_o according_a to_o these_o good_a example_n to_o have_v war_n with_o man_n then_z with_o god_n &_o discord_n with_o antichrist_n and_o all_o his_fw-mi bread_n than_o with_o christ_n and_o his_o member_n we_o grant_v they_o therefore_o that_o to_o bring_v into_o the_o church_n such_o a_o schism_n as_o shall_v make_v division_n not_o only_o among_o christ_n member_n but_o also_o of_o the_o body_n from_o the_o head_n be_v indeed_o a_o undoubted_a sign_n of_o antichristian_a heretic_n but_o whereas_o he_o take_v this_o for_o grant_v that_o this_o we_o have_v do_v in_o depart_v from_o they_o as_o we_o have_v that_o we_o deny_v for_o we_o teach_v man_n to_o hold_v &_o hold_v ourselves_o that_o faith_n &_o religion_n as_o we_o be_v always_o ready_a to_o prove_v by_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n that_o always_o the_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n have_v hold_v and_o therefore_o which_o when_o hardly_o both_o hold_v the_o lively_a member_n among_o themselves_o be_v unity_n and_o also_o knit_v they_o and_o their_o head_n christ_n so_o fast_o together_o as_o that_o no_o popish_a or_o antichristian_a tyranny_n shall_v ever_o be_v able_a to_o sever_v they_o and_o howesoever_o this_o proud_a challenge●_n think_v wt●●_n impossible_a thing_n for_o the_o learned_a protestant_n to_o prove_v that_o they_o have_v bring_v into_o the_o church_n such_o a_o schism_n as_o he_o speak_v of_o i_o the_o unlearnedst_a often_o thousand_o doubt_v not_o that_o i_o be_o very_a well_o able_a to_o do_v it_o for_o this_o be_v most_o certain_a and_o clear_a jesus_n christ_n the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n indeed_o be_v at_o this_o point_n be_v every_o way_n so_o able_a and_o willing_a as_o he_o do_v in_o his_o own_o person_n and_o by_o himself_o alone_o to_o go_v through_o with_o the_o office_n of_o a_o most_o perfect_a saviour_n of_o mankind_n that_o either_o so_o he_o must_v be_v believe_v in_o and_o trust_v unto_o for_o that_o matter_n or_o else_o he_o take_v himself_o antichristianlie_a rob_v of_o that_o 〈◊〉_d and_o glory_n that_o be_v due_a unto_o he_o and_o therefore_o will_v be_v no_o part_n of_o a_o saviour_n at_o all_o to_o such_o that_o this_o be_v most_o true_a appear_v because_o it_o be_v writ_v that_o god_n be_v so_o jealous_a of_o his_o own_o honour_n and_o glory_n that_o he_o will_v not_o abide_v that_o any_o shall_v therein_o be_v partaker_n with_o he_o or_o rob_v he_o of_o any_o iott_n thereof_o esay_n 42._o that_o in_o he_o all_o thing_n be_v already_o prepare_v matthew_n the_o twenty_o two_o that_o his_o name_n be_v the_o only_a name_n whereby_o come_v salvation_n act_n 4._o that_o he_o be_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d reu._n 1_o that_o he_o be_v the_o author_n &_o finisher_n of_o our_o faith_n heb._n 12._o that_o by_o one_o offering_n he_o have_v consecrate_v for_o
defy_v &_o detest_v they_o &_o their_o frantic_a opinion_n as_o much_o as_o any_o and_o of_o all_o man_n we_o have_v be_v the_o forward_a in_o write_v against_o they_o and_o therefore_o they_o do_v we_o the_o more_o wrong_n when_o at_o any_o time_n they_o aggravate_v this_o objection_n against_o we_o by_o charge_v we_o to_o have_v such_o among_o we_o who_o thus_o we_o shun_v and_o mislike_v aswell_o as_o they_o thus_o much_o therefore_o let_v suffice_v for_o answer_v to_o this_o four_o sign_n and_o now_o let_v we_o proceed_v to_o the_o next_o the_o next_o be_v not_o to_o obey_v but_o resist_v the_o prelate_n of_o the_o church_n which_o he_o will_v prove_v so_o to_o be_v by_o paul_n saying_n 2._o tim._n 3._o like_v as_o jannes_n and_o ●ambres_n resist_v moses_n so_o do_v these_o resist_v the_o truth_n be_v man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n &_o reprobate_n in_o faith_n of_o which_o fault_n when_o the_o learned_a protestant_n can_v prove_v they_o guilty_a and_o we_o clear_a he_o promise_v to_o recant_v it_o seem_v the_o man_n in_o allege_v this_o text_n do_v trust_v his_o memory_n too_o much_o for_o twice_o he_o have_v write_v mambres_n for_o jambres_n but_o if_o that_o be_v all_o his_o fault_n here_o it_o be_v a_o small_a matter_n but_o here_o again_o according_a to_o his_o old_a wont_n he_o must_v have_v it_o free_o give_v and_o grant_v he_o for_o he_o bring_v nothing_o at_o all_o to_o prove_v it_o that_o their_o bishop_n and_o prelate_n be_v all_o such_o as_o moses_n &_o paul_n be_v that_o be_v faithful_a in_o teach_v only_a god_n people_n the_o truth_n for_o unless_o this_o be_v yield_v he_o it_o neither_o may_v be_v grant_v he_o that_o he_o right_o apply_v his_o text_n nor_o this_o sign_n against_o us._n but_o he_o know_v well_o enough_o and_o so_o do_v all_o the_o pack_n of_o they_o that_o we_o be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v so_o prodigal_a in_o our_o gift_n unto_o they_o that_o we_o hold_v their_o prelate_n bishop_n &_o priest_n to_o be_v very_a jamnes_n &_o jambres_n in_o resist_v our_o bishop_n and_o minister_n in_o teach_v the_o same_o truth_n that_o they_o have_v learn_v of_o moses_n &_o paul_n and_o that_o therefore_o we_o think_v no_o better_o of_o they_o then_o of_o man_n of_o corrupt_a mind_n &_o reprobate_a in_o the_o faith_n for_o which_o cause_n we_o be_v sure_a we_o both_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o disobey_v they_o and_o resist_v they_o as_o we_o do_v for_o so_o we_o find_v that_o esay_n hieremy_n amos_n michaiah_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o their_o time_n refuse_v to_o obey_v and_o resist_v the_o false_a doctrine_n of_o the_o false_a prophet_n and_o high_a priest_n that_o they_o be_v what_o a_o vanity_n be_v it_o therefore_o in_o this_o man_n to_o trouble_v his_o reader_n with_o such_o cold_a and_o poor_a stuff_n as_o this_o be_v and_o true_o he_o have_v no_o better_a hap_n in_o the_o last_o then_o in_o any_o of_o the_o former_a for_o set_v it_o down_o that_o fickleness_n and_o slipperinesse_n of_o error_n and_o heresy_n be_v a_o sign_n and_o sure_a token_n to_o bewray_v the_o author_n thereof_o and_o that_o the_o catholic_a faith_n or_o truth_n be_v likewise_o to_o be_v know_v by_o the_o constant_a stability_n thereof_o he_o say_v that_o which_o we_o grant_v to_o be_v very_o true_a as_o willing_o as_o he_o or_o any_o of_o his_o side_n insomuch_o that_o common_o it_o be_v one_o of_o the_o principal_a reason_n that_o we_o use_v to_o prove_v their_o opinion_n that_o we_o strive_v against_o they_o for_o to_o be_v error_n or_o heresy_n &_o themselves_o for_o now_o hold_v they_o so_o obstinate_o as_o they_o do_v heretic_n for_o that_o we_o be_v able_a to_o show_v how_o by_o steal_v and_o soft_a pace_n sty_o they_o begin_v first_o to_o creep_v in_o and_o so_o go_v on_o from_o worse_a to_o worse_o until_o to_o use_v his_o own_o term_n they_o come_v ad_fw-la prosundum_fw-la malorum_fw-la that_o be_v even_o to_o the_o depth_n of_o all_o evil_a that_o they_o be_v now_o grow_v unto_o therein_o who_o so_o read_v my_o answer_n to_o albine_n publisher_n preface_n and_o the_o 37._o chapter_n of_o my_o answer_n to_o albine_v himself_o shall_v find_v that_o in_o a_o good_a sort_n of_o their_o opinion_n i_o have_v show_v this_o but_o to_o prove_v this_o that_o it_o be_v the_o property_n of_o heretic_n to_o be_v fickle_a and_o move_a and_o so_o soon_o to_o perish_v &_o pass_v away_o he_o allege_v s._n peter_n say_v that_o lie_a master_n do_v bring_v upon_o themselves_o swift_a damnation_n &_o their_o destruction_n sleep_v not_o which_o he_o speak_v of_o god_n judgement_n y●_z undoubted_o shall_v overtake_v such_o man_n &_o not_o as_o he_o understand_v he_o to_o show_v that_o their_o opinion_n always_o shall_v soon_o pass_v away_o and_o vanish_v in_o the_o former_a sense_n it_o be_v always_o find_v true_a that_o s._n peter_n write_v either_o here_o or_o else_o where_o or_o both_o but_o take_v it_o in_o the_o late_a sense_n than_o peter_n shall_v often_o be_v find_v to_o have_v prophesy_v of_o such_o untrue_o for_o who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o gross_a error_n of_o turcism_n be_v of_o very_o long_a continuance_n &_o that_o the_o error_n of_o the_o aethiopian_n for_o circumcision_n be_v far_o more_o ancient_n and_o that_o yet_o it_o continue_v and_o must_v not_o of_o necessity_n the_o error_n and_o heresy_n of_o antichrist_n be_v of_o very_o long_a continuance_n see_v paul_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v confess_v that_o the_o mystery_n of_o that_o iniquity_n begin_v to_o work_v in_o his_o time_n above_o 1500._o year_n ago_o and_o that_o it_o shall_v not_o quite_o be_v abolish_v before_o christ_n second_o come_v who_o then_o shall_v yet_o by_o the_o brightness_n of_o his_o come_n abolish_v it_o 2._o thess_n 2_o the_o truth_n of_o who_o prophecy_n in_o that_o place_n be_v the_o very_a true_a ground_n of_o the_o antiquity_n universality_n and_o continuance_n of_o the_o popish_a and_o antichristian_a religion_n so_o that_o howsoever_o it_o have_v fall_v out_o in_o some_o heresy_n that_o they_o have_v in_o god_n most_o wise_a providence_n even_o quick_o bring_v themselves_o to_o a_o end_n by_o their_o fickleness_n &_o move_a yet_o it_o appear_v in_o that_o place_n the_o sin_n of_o not_o believe_v the_o truth_n so_o notable_o teach_v and_o confirm_v by_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n in_o the_o just_a judgement_n of_o god_n by_o antichristianity_n be_v so_o severe_o to_o be_v punish_v that_o therewith_o even_o from_o the_o apostle_n day_n to_o the_o end_n of_o the_o world_n they_o that_o commit_v that_o sin_n shall_v be_v in_o danger_n to_o be_v delude_v and_o seduce_v most_o dangerous_o which_o i_o say_v and_o sure_o i_o be_o i_o can_v prove_v it_o have_v be_v and_o yet_o be_v most_o notorious_o verify_v by_o popery_n to_o the_o wonderful_a hurt_n and_o destruction_n of_o soul_n howbeit_o this_o man_n will_v fain_o apply_v this_o sign_n unto_o we_o for_o that_o among_o we_o as_o it_o please_v he_o to_o write_v here_o in_o england_n for_o the_o love_n we_o bear_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o zwinglian_o oecolampadian_o and_o caluinist_n the_o lutheran_n have_v take_v their_o just_a overthrow_n and_o for_o that_o now_o here_o precisian_n and_o puritan_n as_o he_o say_v through_o the_o affection_n of_o the_o common_a people_n and_o so_o wink_v at_o they_o by_o some_o magistrate_n have_v bring_v the_o zwinglian_o and_o caluinist_n to_o be_v ready_a to_o yield_v up_o the_o ghost_n and_o to_o tilt_v up_o their_o heel_n but_o these_o be_v but_o vain_a word_n and_o prove_v not_o his_o purpose_n for_o all_o these_o howsoever_o in_o other_o matter_n of_o lesser_a moment_n they_o too_o much_o disagree_v yet_o as_o i_o have_v say_v before_o and_o as_o it_o be_v notorious_o know_v for_o the_o principal_a article_n of_o religion_n concern_v faith_n or_o manner_n they_o be_v in_o constant_a unity_n hold_v the_o same_o all_o of_o they_o that_o they_o have_v learn_v in_o these_o point_n out_o of_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n as_o the_o harmony_n of_o their_o confession_n extant_a to_o the_o world_n in_o print_n make_v it_o evident_a as_o for_o the_o several_a and_o private_a opinion_n of_o luther_n and_o his_o too_o earnest_a follower_n which_o we_o now_o mislike_v we_o have_v likewise_o always_o mislike_v and_o therefore_o in_o that_o respect_n they_o have_v no_o other_o overthrow_n among_o we_o than_o they_o always_o since_o we_o first_o hear_v of_o they_o have_v have_v and_o howsoever_o in_o these_o point_n we_o rather_o prefer_v zuinglius_fw-la and_o caluin_n judgement_n than_o they_o yet_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o we_o build_v not_o our_o faith_n of_o they_o nor_o of_o they_o or_o by_o they_o delight_v we_o to_o be_v call_v we_o protest_v and_o profess_v ourselves_o